Project
Gutenberg Consortia
Center's
World Public
Library Collection
Project Gutenberg Consortia Center Collection, a member of the World
Public Library,http://WorldLibrary.net,
bringing the world's eBook collections together.
Conditions
of Use:
This
eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with almost
no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use
it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with
this eBook or full complete details are online at: http://gutenberg.net/license.
Here are 3 of the more major items to consider:
The eBooks
on the PG sites are not 100% public domain, some of them are copyrighted
and used by permission and thus you may charge for redistribution
only via direct permission from the copyright holders.
Project
Gutenberg is a registered trademark [TM]. For any other purpose
than to redistribute eBooks containing the entire Project Gutenberg
file free of charge and with the headers intact, permission is
required.
The public
domain status is per U.S. copyright law. This eBook is from the
Project Gutenberg Consortia Center of the United States.
The mission of the Project Gutenberg Consortia Center is to provide
a similar framework for the collection of eBook collections as does
Project Gutenberg for single eBooks, operating under the practices,
and general guidelines of Project Gutenberg. The major additional
function of Project Gutenberg Consortia Center is to manage the addition
of large collections of eBooks from other eBook creation and collection
centers around the world.
For more great classic literature visit:
The
World Public Library and Project Gutenberg Consortia Center, bringing
the world's eBook collections together http://www.Gutenberg.us
In the Lectures printed in this Volume an attempt is made to
carry farther in some particulars the line of investigation
pursued by the Author in an earlier work on 'Ancient Law'. The
fortunes of the legal system which then supplied him with the
greatest number of his illustrations have been strikingly unlike
those of another body of law from which he has now endeavoured to
obtain some new materials for legal and social history. The Roman
Law has never ceased to be spoken of with deep respect, and it is
in fact the source of the greatest part of the rules by which
civil life is still governed in the Western World. The Ancient
Irish Law, the so-called Brehon Law, has been for the most part
bitterly condemned by the few writers who have noticed it; and,
after gradually losing whatever influence it once possessed in
the country in which it grew up, in the end it was forcibly
suppressed. Yet the very cases which have denied a modern history
to the Brehon Law have given it a especial interest of its own in
our day through the arrest of its development; and this interest,
the Author hopes, is sufficient to serve as his excuse for making
the conclusions it suggests the principal subject of the Lectures
now published, except the last three.
The obligations o£ the Author to various Gentlemen for
instruction derived from their published writings or private
communications are acknowledged in the body of the work, but he
has to express his especial thanks to the Bishop of Limerick, and
to Professor Thaddeus O'Mahony, for facilities of access to the
still unpublished translations of Brehon manuscripts, as well as
for many valuable suggestions.
The Lectures (with the omission of portions) have all been
delivered at Oxford.
The sources of information concerning the early history of
institutions which have been opened to us are numerous and
valuable. On one subject in particular, which may be confidently
said to have been almost exclusively investigated till lately by
writers who had followed a false path, the additions to our
knowledge are of special interest and importance. We at length
know something concerning the beginnings of the great institution
of Property in Land. The collective ownership of the soil by
groups of men either in fact united by blood-relationships, or
believing or assuming that they are so united, is now entitled to
take rank as an ascertained primitive phenomenon, once
universally characterising those communities of mankind between
whose civilisation and our own there is any distinct connection
or analogy. The evidence has been found on all sides of us, dimly
seen and verifiable with difficulty in countries which have
undergone the enormous pressure of the Roman Empire, or which
have been strongly affected by its indirect influence, but
perfectly plain and unmistakeable in the parts of the world,
peopled by the Aryan race, where the Empire has made itself felt
very slightly or not at all. As regards the Sclavonic
communities, the enfranchisement of the peasantry of the Russian
dominions in Europe has given a stimulus to enquiries which
formerly had attractions for only a few curious observers, and
the amount of information collected has been very large. We now
know much more clearly than we did before that the soil of the
older provinces of the Russian Empire has been, from time
immemorial, almost exclusively distributed among groups of
self-styled kinsmen, collected in cultivating
village-communities, self-organised and self-governing; and,
since the great measure of the present reign, the collective
rights of these communities, and the rights and duties of their
members in respect of one another, are no longer entangled with
and limited by the manorial privileges of an owner-in-chief.
There is also fresh evidence that the more backward of the
outlying Sclavonic societies are constituted upon essentially the
same model; and it is one of the facts with which the Western
world will some day assuredly have to reckon, that the political
ideas of so large a portion of the human race, and its ideas of
property also, are inextricably bound up with the notions of
family interdependency, of collective ownership, and of natural
subjection to patriarchal power. The traces of the ancient social
order in the Germanic and Scandinavian countries are, I need
scarcely say, considerably fainter, and tend always to become
more obscured; but the re-examination of the written evidence
respecting ancient Teutonic life and custom proceeds without
intermission, and incidentally much light has been thrown on the
early history of property by the remarkable work of Sohm
('Frankische Reichs-und Gerichtsverfassung'). The results
obtained by the special method of G.L. Von Maurer have meantime
been verified by comparison with phenomena discovered in the most
unexpected quarters. The researches of M. de Laveleye, in
particular, have been conducted over a field of very wide extent;
and, although I dissent from some of the economic conclusions to
which he has been led, I cannot speak too highly of the value of
the materials collected by him, and described in the recently
published volume which he has entitled "La Propriete et ses
Formes Primitives". I have not observed that the vestiges left on
the soil and law of England and of the Scottish Lowlands by the
ancient Village-Community have been made the subject of any
published work since the monograph of Nasse on the "Land
Community of the Middle Ages" was given to the world, and since
the lectures delivered in this place three years since appeared
in print. Nobody, however, who knows the carefulness with which
an English Court of Justice sifts the materials brought before it
will wonder at my attaching a special importance to the judgment
of Lord Chancellor Hatherley, given in a difficult case which
arose through a dispute between different classes of persons
interested in a manor, Warrick against Queen's college, Oxford
(reported in 6 Law Reports, Chancery Appeals, 716). It appears to
me to recognise the traces of a state of things older than the
theoretical basis of English Real Property Law, and, so far as it
goes, to allow that the description of it given here was correct.
Meanwhile, if I may judge from the communications which do not
cease to reach me from India, and from various parts of this
country, the constitution of the Village-Community, as it exists,
and as it existed, is engaging the attention of a large number of
industrious observers, and the facts bearing upon the subject,
which I hope will some day be made public, prove to exist in
extraordinary abundance.
There was not set of communities which until recently
supplied us with information less in amount and apparent value
concerning the early history of law than those of Celtic origin.
This was the more remarkable, because one particular group of
small Celtic societies, which have engrossed more than their
share of the interest of this country -- the clans of the
Scottish Highlands -- had admittedly retained many of the
characteristics, and in particular the political characteristics
of a more ancient condition of the world, almost down to our own
day. But the explanation is, that all Celtic societies were until
recently seen by those competent to observe them through a
peculiarly deceptive medium. A veil spread by the lawyers, a veil
woven of Roman law and of the comparatively modern combination of
primitive and Roman law which we call feudalism, hung between the
Highland institutions and the shrewd investigating genius of the
Scottish Lowlanders. A thick mist of feudal law hid the ancient
constitution of Irish society from English observation, and led
to unfounded doubts respecting the authenticity of the laws of
Wales. The ancient organisation of the Celts of Gaul, described
by Caesar with the greatest clearness and decisiveness, appeared
to have entirely disappeared from France, partly because French
society was exclusively examined for many centuries by lawyers
trained either in Roman or in highly feudalised law, but partly
also because the institutions of the Gallic Celts had really
passed under the crushing machinery of Roman legislation. I do
not, indeed, mean to say that this darkness has not recently
given signs of lifting. It has been recognized that the
collections of Welsh laws published by the Record Commission,
though their origin and date are uncertain, are undoubtedly
bodies of genuine legal rules; and, independently of the
publications to which I am about to direct attention, the group
of Irish scholars, which has succeeded a school almost infamous
for the unchastened license of its speculations on history and
philology, had pointed out many things in Irish custom which
connected it with the archaic practices known to be still
followed or to have been followed by the Germanic races. As early
as 1837 Mr W.F. Skene, in a work of much value called "The
Highlanders of Scotland", had corrected many of the mistakes on
the subject of Highland usage into which writers exclusively
conversant with feudal rules had been betrayed; and the same
eminent antiquarian, in an appendix to his edition of the
Scottish chronicler, Fordun, published in 1872, confirms evidence
which had reached me in considerable quantities from private
sources to the effect that village-communities with 'shifting
severalties' existed in the Highlands within living memory. Quite
recently, also, M. Le Play and others have come upon plain traces
of such communities in several parts of France. A close
re-examination of the Custumals or manuals of feudal rules
plentiful in French legal literature, led farther to some highly
interesting results. It clearly appeared from them that
communities of villeins were constantly found on the estates of
the French territorial nobility. The legal writers have always
represented these as voluntary associations which were rather
favoured by the lord on account of the greater certainty and
regularity with which their members rendered him suit and
service. As a rule, when a tenant holding by base tenure died,
the lord succeeded in the first instance to his land, a rule of
which there are plain traces in our English law of copyhold. But
it is expressly stated that, in the case of an association of
villeins, the lord did not resume their land, being supposed to
be compensated by their better ability to furnish his dues. Now
that the explanation has once been given, there can be no doubt
that these associations were not really voluntary partnerships,
but groups of kinsmen; not, however, so often organised on the
ordinary type of the Village-Community as on that of the
House-Community, which has recently been examined in Dalmatia and
Croatia. Each of them was what the Hindoos call a Joint Undivided
Family, a collection of assumed descendants from a common
ancestor, preserving a common hearth and common meals during
several generations. There was no escheat of the land to the lord
on a death, because such a corporation never dies, and the
succession is perpetual.
But much the most instructive contribution to our knowledge
of the ancient Celtic societies has been furnished by the Irish
Government, in the translations of the Ancient Laws of Ireland,
which have been published at its expense. The first volume of
these translations was published in 1865; the second in 1869; the
third, enriched with some valuable prefaces, has only just
appeared. No one interested in the studies which are now
occupying us could fail to recognise the importance of the
earlier volumes, but there was much difficulty in determining
their exact bearing on the early history of Celtic institutions.
The bulk of the law first published consisted in a collection of
rules belonging to what in our modern legal language we should
call the Law of Distress. Now, in very ancient bodies of rules
the Law of Distress, as I shall endeavour to explain hereafter,
is undoubtedly entitled to a very different place from that which
would be given to it in any modern system of jurisprudence; but
still it is a highly special branch of law in any stage of
development. There is, however, another more permanent and more
serious cause of embarrassment in drawing conclusions from these
laws. Until comparatively lately they were practically
unintelligible; and they were restored to knowledge by the
original translators, Dr O'Donovan and Dr O'Curry, two very
remarkable men, both of whom are now dead. The translations have
been carefully revised by the learned editor of the Irish text;
but it is probable that several generations of Celtic scholars
will have had to interchange criticisms on the language of the
laws before the reader who approaches them without any pretension
to Celtic scholarship can be quite sure that he has the exact
meaning of every passage before him. The laws, too, I need
scarcely say, are full of technical expressions; and the greatest
scholar who has not had a legal training -- and, indeed, up to a
certain point when he has had a legal training -- may fail to
catch the exact excess or defect of meaning which distinguishes a
word in popular use from the same word employed technically. Such
considerations suggest the greatest possible caution in dealing
with this body of rules. In what follows I attempt to draw
inferences only when the meaning and drift of the text seem
reasonably certain, and I have avoided some promising lines of
enquiry which would lead us through passages of doubtful
signification.
The value which the Ancient Laws of Ireland, the so-called
Brehon laws, will possess when they are completely published and
interpreted, may, I think, be illustrated in this way. Let it be
remembered that the Roman Law, which, next to the Christian
Religion, is the most plentiful source of the rules governing
actual conduct throughout Western Europe, is descended from a
small body of Aryan customs reduced to writing in the fifth
century before Christ, and known as the Twelve Tables of Rome.
Let it farther be recollected that this law was at first expanded
and enveloped, not at all, or very slightly, by legislation, but
by a process which we may perceive still in operation in various
communities -- the juridical interpretation of authoritative
texts by successive generations of learned men. Now, the largest
collection of Irish legal rules, which has come down to us,
professes to be an ancient Code, with an appendage of later
glosses and commentaries; and, if its authenticity could be fully
established, this ancient Irish Code would correspond
historically to the Twelve Tables of Rome, and to many similar
bodies of written rules which appear in the early history of
Aryan societies. There is reason, however, to think that its
claims to antiquity cannot be sustained to their full extent, and
that the Code itself is an accretion of rules which have
clustered round an older nucleus. But that some such kernel or
perhaps several such kernels of written law existed, is highly
probable, and it is also probable that the whole of the Brehon
law consists of them and of accumulations formed upon them. It is
farther probable that the process by which these accumulations
were formed was, as in the infancy of the Roman State, juridical
interpretation. According to the opinion which I follow, the
interesting fact about the ancient Irish law is, that this
process was exclusive, and that none of the later agencies by
which law is transformed came into play. The Brehon laws are in
no sense a legislative construction, and thus they are in no
sense a legislative construction, and thus they are not only an
authentic monument of a very ancient group of Aryan institutions;
they are also a collection of rules which have been gradually
developed in a way highly favourable to the preservation of
archaic peculiarities. Two causes have done most to obscure the
oldest institutions of the portion of the human race to which we
belong: one has been the formation throughout the West of strong
centralised governments, concentrating in themselves the public
force of the community, and enabled to give to that force upon
occasion the special form of legislative power; the other has
been the influence, direct and indirect, of the Roman Empire,
drawing with it an activity in legislation unknown to the parts
of the world which were never subjected to it. Now, Ireland is
allowed on all hands to have never formed part of the Empire; it
was very slightly affected from a distance by the Imperial law;
and, even if it be admitted that, during certain intervals of its
ancient history, it had a central government, assuredly this
government was never a strong one. Under these circumstances it
is not wonderful that the Brehon law, growing together without
legislation upon an original body of Aryan custom, and formed
beyond the limit of that cloud of Roman juridical ideas which for
many centuries overspread the whole Continent, and even at its
extremity extended to England, should present some very strong
analogies to another set of derivative Aryan usages, the Hindoo
law, which was similarly developed. The curious and perplexing
problems which such a mode of growth suggests have to grappled
with by the student of either system.
The ancient laws of Ireland have come down to us as an
assemblage of law-tracts, each treating of some one subject or of
a group of subjects. The volumes officially translated and
published contain the two largest of these tracts, the Senchus
Mor, or Great Book of the Ancient Law, and the Book of Aicill.
While the comparison of the Senchus Mor and of the Book of Aicill
with other extant bodies of archaic rules leaves no doubt of the
great antiquity of much of their contents, the actual period at
which they assumed their present shape is extremely uncertain. Mr
Whitley Stokes, one of the most eminent of living Celtic
scholars, believes, upon consideration of its verbal forms, that
the Senchus Mor was compiled in or perhaps slightly before the
eleventh century; and there appears to be internal evidence which
on the whole allows us to attribute the Book of Aicill to the
century preceding. The Senchus Mor, it is true, expressly claims
for itself a far earlier origin. In a remarkable preface, of
which I shall have much to say hereafter, it gives an account,
partly in verse, of the circumstances under which it was drawn
up, and it professes to have been compiled during the life and
under the personal influence of St Patrick. These pretensions
have been ingeniously supported, but there is not much temerity,
I think, in refusing to accept the fifth century as the date of
the Senchus Mor. At the same time it is far from impossible that
the writing of the ancient Irish laws began soon after the
Christianisation of Ireland. It was Christianity, a 'religion of
a book', which for the first time introduced many of the ruder
nations outside the Empire to the art of writing. We cannot
safely claim for the Christian era, precisely the same degree of
culture which Caesar attributes to the Celts of the Continent in
the first century before Christ; but, even if we could do so,
Caesar expressly states of the Gauls that, though they were
acquainted with writing, they had superstitious scruples about
using written characters to preserve any part of their sacred
literature, in which their law would then be included. Such
objections would, however, necessarily disappear with the
conversion of the Irish people to Christianity. On the whole
there is no antecedent improbability in the tradition that, soon
after this conversion, the usages of the Irish began to be stated
in writing, and Celtic scholars have detected not a little
evidence that parts of these more venerable writings are imbedded
in the text of the Book of Aicill and of the Senchus Mor.
It is extremely likely that the most ancient law was
preserved in rude verse or rhythmical prose. In the oldest Irish
traditions the lawyer is distinguished with difficulty from the
poet, poetry from literature. Both in the Senchus Mor and in the
Book of Aicill the express statement of the law is described as
'casting a thread of poetry' about it, and the traditional
authors of the Senchus Mor are said to have exhibited 'all the
judgements and poetry of the men of Erin.' Modern Irish
scholarship has, in fact, discovered that portions of the Senchus
Mor are really in verse. The phenomenon is not unfamiliar. Mr
Grote, speaking of the Elegiacs of Solon, and of the natural
priority of verse to prose, says (History of Greece, iii. 119),
'the acquisitions as well as the effusions of an intellectual
man, even in the simplest form, (then) adjusted themselves not to
the limitations of the period and semicolon, but to those of the
hexameter and pentameter.' There is no question, I conceive, that
this ancient written verse is what is now called a survival,
descending to the first ages of written composition from the ages
when measured rhythm was absolutely essential, in order that the
memory might bear the vast burdens placed upon it. It is now
generally agreed that the voluminous versified Sanscrit
literature, which embraces not only the poetry of the Hindoos,
but most of their religion, much of what stands to them in place
of history, and something even of their law, was originally
preserved by recollection and published by recitation; and even
now, in the Sanscrit schools which remain, the pupil is trained
to exercises of memory which are little short of the miraculous
to an Englishman.
The tracts are of very unequal size, and the subjects they
embrace are of very unequal importance. But all alike consist of
an original text, divided into paragraphs. Above or over against
the principal words of the text glosses or interpretations are
written in a smaller hand, and a paragraph is constantly followed
by an explanatory commentary, also in a smaller hand, written in
the space which separates the paragraph from the next. The
scarcity of material for writing may perhaps sufficiently account
for the form taken by the manuscripts; but the Celts seem to have
had a special habit of glossing, and you may have heard that the
glosses written by early Irish monks between the lines or on the
margin of manuscripts belonging to religious houses on the
Continent had much to do with the wonderful discoveries of Zeuss
in Celtic philology. A facsimile of part of two Brehon
manuscripts, one in the British Museum, and the other in the
Library of Trinity College, Dublin, may be seen at the beginning
of the second published volume of the translations. It seems
probable that each tract was the property, and that it sets forth
the special legal doctrines, of some body of persons who, in
modern legal phrase, had perpetual succession, a Family or Law
School; there is ample evidence of the existence of such law
schools in ancient Ireland, and they are another feature of
resemblance to the India of the past and in some degree to the
India of the present.
The text of each of the published tracts appears to have been
put together by one effort, no doubt from pre-existing materials,
and it may have been written continuously by some one person; but
the additions to it must be an accumulation of explanations and
expositions of various dates by subsequent possessors of the
document. I quite agree with the observation of the Editors,
that, while the text is for the most part comparatively
consistent and clear, the commentary is often obscure and
contradictory. Precisely the same remark is frequently made by
Anglo-Indian Judges on the Brahminical legal treatises, some of
which are similarly divided into at text and a commentary. As
regards the ancient Irish law, the result of the whole process is
anything but satisfactory to the modern reader. I do not know
that, in any extant body of legal rules, the difficulty of
mastering the contents has ever been so seriously aggravated by
the repulsiveness of the form. One of the editors has unkindly,
but not unjustly, compared a Brehon tract to the worst kind of
English law-book, without even the moderate advantage of an
alphabetical arrangement.
The exact date at which the existing manuscripts were written
cannot be satisfactorily settled until they are all made
accessible, which unfortunately they are not at present. But we
know one MS. of the Senchus Mor to be at least as old as the
fourteenth century, since a touching note has been written on it
by a member of the family to which it belonged: "One thousand
three hundred two and forty years from the birth of Christ till
this night; and this is the second year since the coming of the
plague into Ireland. I have written this in the 20th year of my
age. I am Hugh, son of Conor McEgan, and whoever reads it let him
offer a prayer of mercy for my son! This is Christmas night, and
on this night I place myself under the protection of the King of
Heaven and Earth, beseeching that he will bring me and my friends
safe through the plague. Hugh wrote this in his own father's book
in the year the great plague."
The system of legal rules contained in these law tracts is
undoubtedly the same with that repeatedly condemned by
Anglo-Irish legislation, and repeatedly noticed by English
observers of Ireland down to the early part of the seventeenth
century. It is the same law which, in 1367, a statute of Kilkenny
denounces as 'wicked and damnable'. It is the same law which
Edmund Spencer, in his 'View of the State of Ireland,' describes
as 'a rule of right unwritten, but delivered by tradition from
one to another, win which oftentimes there appeareth a great show
of equity, in determining the right between party and party, but
in many things repugning quite both to God's law and man's'. It
is the same 'lewd' and 'unreasonable' custom which Sir John Davis
contrasts with the 'just and honourable law of England,' and to
which he attributes such desolation and barbarism in Ireland, 'as
the like as never seen in any country that professed the name of
Christ.' It is not our business in this department of study to
enquire how far this violent antipathy was politically
justifiable. Even if the worst that has been said by Englishmen
of the Brehon law down to our own day were true, we might console
ourselves by turning our eyes to spheres of enquiry fuller of
immediate promise to the world than ours, and observing how much
of the wealth of modern thought has been obtained from the dross
which earlier generations had rejected. Meanwhile, happily, it is
a distinct property of the Comparative Method of investigation to
abate national prejudices. I myself believe that the government
of India by the English has been rendered appreciably easier by
the discoveries which have brought home to the educated of both
races the common Aryan parentage of Englishman and Hindoo.
Similarly, I am not afraid to anticipate that there will some day
be more hesitation in repeating the invectives of Spenser and
Davis, which it is once clearly understood that the 'lewd'
institutions of the Irish were virtually the same institutions as
those out of which the 'just and honourable law' of England grew.
Why these institutions followed in their development such
different paths it is the province of History to decide; but,
when it gives an impartial decision, I doubt much its wholly
attributing the difference to native faults of Irish character.
We, who are able here to examine coolly the ancient Irish law in
an authentic form, can see that it is a very remarkable body of
archaic law, unusually pure from its origin. It has some
analogies with the Roman law of the earliest times, some with
Scandinavian law, some with the law of the Sclavonic races, so
far as it is known, some (and these particularly strong) with the
Hindoo law, and quite enough with old Germanic law of all kinds,
to render valueless, for scientific purposes, the comparison
which the English observers so constantly institute with the laws
of England. It is manifestly the same system in origin and
principle with that which has descended to us as the Laws of
Wales, but these last have somehow undergone the important
modifications which arise from the establishment of a
comparatively strong central authority. Nor does the Brehon law
altogether disappoint the expectations of the patriotic Irishmen
who, partly trusting to the testimony of Edmund Spenser, the
least unkind of the English critics of Ireland, though one of the
most ruthless in his practical suggestions, looked forward to its
manifesting, when it was published, an equity and reasonableness
which would put to shame the barbarous jurisprudence of England.
Much of it -- I am afraid I must say, most of it -- is worthless
save for historical purposes, but on some points it really does
come close to the most advanced legal doctrines of our day. The
explanation -- which I will hereafter give at length -- I believe
to lie in the method of its development, which has not been
through the decision of courts, but by the opinions of lawyers on
hypothetical states of fact.
I think I may lay down that, wherever we have any knowledge
of a body of Aryan custom, either anterior to or but slightly
affected by the Roman Empire, it will be found to exhibit some
strong points of resemblance to the institutions which are the
basis of the Brehon law. The depth to which the empire has
stamped itself on the political arrangements of the modern world
has been illustrated of late years with much learning; but I
repeat my assertion that the great difference between the Roman
Empire and all other sovereignties of the ancient world lay in
the activity of its legislation, through the Edicts of the
Praetor and the Constitution of the Emperors. For many races, it
actually repealed their customs and replaced them by new ones.
For others, the results of its legislation mixed themselves
indistinguishably with their law. With others, it introduced or
immensely stimulated the habit of legislation; and this is one of
the ways in which it has influenced the stubborn body of Germanic
custom prevailing in Great Britain. But wherever the institutions
of any Aryan race have been untouched by it, or slightly touched
by it, the common basis of Aryan usage is perfectly discernible;
and thus it is that these Brehon law-tracts enable us to connect
the races at the eastern and western extremities of a later Aryan
world, the Hindoos and the Irish.
The Lectures which follow will help, I trust, to show what
use the student of comparative jurisprudence may make of this
novel addition to our knowledge of ancient law. Meantime, there
is some interest in contrasting the view of its nature, origin,
and growth, which we are obliged to take here, with that to which
the ancient Irish practitioners occasionally strove hard to give
currency. The Senchus Mor, the Great Book of the Ancient Law, was
doubtless a most precious possession of the law-school or family
to which it belonged; and its owners have joined it to a preface
in which a semi-divine authorship is boldly claimed for it.
Odhran, the charioteer of St Patrick -- so says this preface --
had been killed, and the question arose whether Nuada, the
slayer, should die, or whether the saint was bound by his own
principles to unconditional forgiveness. St Patrick did not
decide the point himself; the narrator, in true professional
spirit, tells us that he set the precedent according to which a
stranger from beyond the sea always selects a legal adviser. He
chose 'to go according to the judgment of the royal poet of the
men of Erin, Dubhthach Mac ua Lugair,' and he 'blessed the mouth'
of Dubhthach. A poem, doubtless of much antiquity and celebrity,
is then put into the mouth of the arbitrator, and by the judgment
embodied in it Nuada is to die; but he ascends straight to heaven
through the intercession of St Patrick. "Then King Laeghaire
said, "It is necessary for you, O men of Erin, that every other
law should be settled and arranged by us as well as this." "It is
better to do so," said Patrick. It was then that all the
professors of the sciences in Erin were assembled,and each of
them exhibited his art before Patrick, in the presence of every
chief in Erin. It was then Dubhthach was ordered to exhibit all
the judgments and all the poetry of Erin, and every law which
prevailed among the men of Erin... This is the Cain Patraic, and
no human Brehon of the Gaedhil is able to abrogate anything that
is found in the Senchus Mor.'
The inspired award of Dubhthach that Nuada must die suggests
to the commentator the following remark: "What is understood from
the above decision which God revealed to Dubhthach is, that it
was a middle course between forgiveness and retaliation; for
retaliation prevailed in Erin before Patrick, and Patrick brought
forgiveness with him; that is, Nuada was put to death for his
crime, and Patrick obtained heaven for him. At this day we keep
between forgiveness and retaliation; for as at present no one has
the power of bestowing heaven, as Patrick had at that day, so no
one is put to death for his intentional crimes, so long as 'eric'
fine is obtained; and whenever 'eric' fine is not obtained, he is
put to death for his intentional crime, and placed on the sea for
his unintentional crimes." It is impossible, of course, to accept
the statement that this wide-spread ancient institution, the
pecuniary fine levied on tribes or families for the wrongs done
by their members, had its origin in Christian influences; but
that it succeeded simple retaliation is in the highest degree
probable, and no doubt in its day it was at least as great an
advantage to the communities among whom it prevailed as was that
stern administration of criminal justice to which the Englishmen
of the sixteenth century were accustomed, and on which they so
singularly prided themselves. but by the sixteenth century it may
well have outlived its usefulness, and so may have partially
justified the invectives of its English censors, who generally
have the 'eric'-fine for homicide in view when they denounce the
Brehon law as 'contrary to God's law and man's.'
The great peculiarity of the ancient laws of Ireland, so far
as they are accessible to us, is discussed, with much instructive
illustration, in the General Preface to the Third Volume of the
official translations. They are not a legislative structure, but
the creation of a class of professional lawyers, the Brehons,
whose occupation became hereditary, and who on that ground have
been designated, though not with strict accuracy, a caste. This
view, which is consistent with all that early English authorities
on Ireland have told us of the system they call the Brehon law,
is certainly that which would be suggested by simple inspection
of the law tracts at present translated and published. The Book
of Aicill is probably the oldest, and its text is avowedly
composed of the dicta of two famous lawyers, Cormac and
Cennfeladh. The Senchus Mor does, indeed, profess to have been
produced by a process resembling legislation, but the pretension
cannot be supported; and, even if it could, the Senchus Mor would
not less consist of the opinions of famous Brehons. It describes
the legal rules embodied in its text as formed of the 'law of
nature', and of the 'law of the letter'. The 'law of the letter'
is the Scriptural law, extended by so much of Canon law as the
primitive monastic Church of Ireland can be supposed to have
created or adopted. The reference in the misleading phrase 'law
of nature', is not to be the memorable combination of words
familiar to the Roman lawyers, but to the text of St Paul in the
Epistle to the Romans: 'For when the Gentiles, which have not the
law, do by nature the things contained in the law, these, having
not the law, are the law unto themselves.' (Rom. ii. 14) The 'law
of nature' is, therefore, the ancient pre-Christian ingredient in
the system, and the 'Senchus Mor' says of it: 'The judgments of
true nature while the Holy Ghost had spoken through the mouths of
the Brehons and just poets of the men of Erin, from the first
occupation of Ireland down to the reception of the faith, were
all exhibited by Dubhthach to Patrick. What did not clash with
the Word of God in the written law and the New Testament and the
consciences of believers, was confirmed in the laws of the
Brehons by Patrick and by the ecclesiastics and chieftains of
Ireland; for the law of nature had been quite right except the
faith, and its obligations, and the harmony of the Church and
people. And this is the "Senchus Mor".'
Dr Sullivan, on the other hand, whose learned and exhaustive
Introduction to O'Curry's Lectures forms the first volume of the
'Manners and Customs of the Ancient Irish', affirms, on the
evidence of ancient records, that the institutions which in some
communities undoubtedly developed into true legislatures had
their counterparts in the Ireland to which the laws belonged, and
he does not hesitate to designate certain portions of the Irish
legal system 'statute-law'. In the present sate of criticism on
Irish documents it is not possible to hold the balance exactly
between the writers of the Introduction and of the General
Preface; but there is not the inconsistency between their
opinions which there might appear to be at first sight. In the
infancy of society many conceptions are found blended together
which are now distinct, and many associations which are now
inseparable from particular processes or institutions are not
found coupled with them. There is abundant proof that legislative
and judicial power are not distinguished in primitive thought;
nor, again, is legislation associated with innovation. In our day
the legislator is always supposed to innovate; the judge never.
But of old the legislator no more necessarily innovated than the
judge; he only, for the most part, declared pre-exiting law or
custom. It is impossible to determine how much new law there was
in the Laws of Solon, or in the Twelve Tables of Rome, or in the
Laws of Alfred and Canute, or in the Salic Law which is the
oldest of the so-called Leges Barbarorum, but in all probability
the quantity was extremely small. Thus, when a body of Brehon
judgments was promulgated by an Irish Chief to a tribal assembly,
it is probable than convenience was the object sought rather than
a new sanction. A remarkable poem, appended to O'Curry's
Lectures, tells us how certain Chiefs proceeded every third year
to the 'Fair of Carman' and there proclaimed 'the rights of every
law and the restraints'; but it does not at all follow that this
promulgation had any affinity for legislation in the modern
sense. The innovating legislatures of the modern world appear to
have grown up where certain conditions were present which were
viturally unknown to ancient Ireland -- where the primitive
groups of which society was formed were broken up with some
completeness, and where a central government was constituted
acting on individuals from a distance coercively and
irresistibly.
There are, moreover, some independent reasons for thinking
that, among the Celtic races, the half-judicial,
half-legislative, power originally possessed by the tribal Chief,
or by the tribal Assembly, or by both in combination, passed very
early to a special class of learned persons. The Prefaces in
Irish found at the commencement of some of the law-tracts, which
are of much interest, but of uncertain origin and date, contain
several reference to the order in Celtic society which has
hitherto occupied men's thoughts more than any other, the Druids.
The word occurs in the Irish text. The writers of the prefaces
seem to have conceived the Druids as a class of heathen priests
who had once practised magical arts. The enchanters of Pharaoh
are, for instance, called the Egyptian Druids, in the Preface to
the Senchus Mor. The point of view seems to be the one familiar
enough to us in modern literature, where an exclusive prominence
is given to the priestly character of the Druids; nor do the
Brehon lawyers appear to connect themselves with a class of men
whom they regard as having belonged altogether to the old order
of the world. I am quite aware that, in asking whether the
historical disconnection of the Brehons and the Druids can be
accepted as a fact, I suggest an enquiry about which there hangs
a certain air of absurdity. There has been so much wild
speculation and assertion about Druids and Druidical antiquities
that the whole subject seems to be considered as almost beyond
the pale of serious discussion. Yet we are not at liberty to
forget that the first great observer of Celtic manners describes
the Celts of the Continent as before all things remarkable for
the literary class which their society included. Let me add that
in Caesar's account of the Druids there is not a word which does
not appear to me perfectly credible. The same remark may be made
of Strabo. But the source of at all events a part of the
absurdities which have clustered round the subject I take to be
the Natural History of Pliny, and they seem to belong to those
stories about plants and animals to which may be traced a great
deal of the nonsense written in the world.
You may remember the picture given by Caesar of the
Continental Celts, as they appear to him when he first used his
unrivalled opportunities of examining them. He tells us that
their tribal societies consisted substantially of three orders he
calls the Equites, the Druids, and the Plebeians. Somebody has
said that this would be a not very inaccurate description of
French society just before the first Revolution, with its three
orders of Nobles, Clergy, and unprivileged Tiers-État; but the
observation is a good deal more ingenious than true. We are now
able to compare Caesar's account of the Gauls with the evidence
concerning a Celtic community which the Brehon tracts supply; and
if we use this evidence as a test, we shall soon make up our
minds that, though his representation is accurate as far as it
goes, it errs in omission of detail. The Equites, or Chiefs,
though to some extent they were a class apart, did not stand in
such close relation to one another as they stood to the various
septs or groups over which they presided. 'Every chief,' says the
Brehon law, 'rules over his land, whether it be small or whether
it be large.' The Plebeians, again, so far from constituting a
great miscellaneous multitude, were distributed into every sort
of natural group, based ultimately upon the Family. The mistake,
so far as there was error, I conceive to have been an effect of
mental distance. It had the imperfections of the view obtained by
looking on the Gangetic plains from the slopes of the Himalayas.
The impression made is not incorrect, but an immensity of detail
is lost to the observer, and a surface varied by countless small
elevations looks perfectly flat. Caesar's failure to note the
natural divisions of the Celtic tribesmen, the families and septs
or sub-tribes, is to me particularly instructive. The theory of
human equality is of Roman origin; the comminution of human
society, and the unchecked competition among its members, which
have gone so far in the Western Europe of our days, had the most
efficient causes in the mechanism of the Roman State. Hence
Caesar's omissions seem to be those most natural in a Roman
general who was also a great administrator and trained lawyer;
and they are undoubtedly those to which an English ruler of India
is most liable at this moment. It is often said that it takes two
or three years before a Governor-General learns that the vast
Indian population is an aggregate of natural groups, and not the
mixed multitude he left at home; and some rulers of India have
been accused of never having mastered the lesson at all.
There are a few very important points of detail to be noticed
in Caesar's description of what may be called the lay portion of
Celtic society. I shall afterwards call your attention to the
significance of what he states concerning the classes whom he
calls the clients and debtors of the Equites, and respecting the
increased power which they give to the Chief on whom they are
dependent. It is, however, remarkable that, when he speaks of the
Druids, his statements are greatly more detailed. Here there were
no home associations to mislead him, but, beyond that, it is
plain that his interest was strongly roused by the novel
constitution of this privileged order whom he places by the side
of the Chiefs. Let me recall, then, to you the principal points
of his description, from which I designedly omit all statements
concerning the priestly office of the class described. He tells
us that the Druids were supreme judges in all public and private
disputes; and that, for instance, all questions of homicide, of
inheritance, and of boundary were referred to them for decision.
He says that the Druids presided over schools of learning, to
which the Celtic youth flocked eagerly for instruction, remaining
in them sometimes (so he was informed) for twenty years at a
time. He states that the pupils in these schools learned an
enormous quantity of verses, which were never committed to
writing; and he gives his opinion that the object was not merely
to prevent sacred knowledge from being popularised, but to
strengthen the memory. Besides describing to us the religious
doctrine of the Druids, he informs us that they were extremely
fond of disputing about the nature of the material world, the
movements of the stars, and the dimensions of the earth and of
the universe. At their head there was by his account a chief
Druid, whose place at his death was filled by election, and the
succession occasionally gave rise to violent contests of arms
(B.G. vi, 13, 14).
There are some strong and even startling points of
correspondence between the functions of the Druids, as described
by Caesar, and the office of the Brehon, as suggested by the
law-tracts. The extensive literature of law just disinterred
testifies to the authority of the Brehons in all legal matters,
and raises a strong presumption that they were universal referees
in disputes. Among their writings are separate treatises on
inheritance and boundary, and almost every page of the
translations contains a reference to the 'eric'-fine for
homicide. The schools of literature and law appear to have been
numerous in ancient Ireland, and O'Curry is able to give the
course of instruction in one of them extending over twelve years.
All literature, including even law, seems to have been identified
with poetry. the chief Druid of Caesar meets us on the very
threshold of the Senchus Mor, in the person of Dubhthach Mac ua
Lugair, the royal poet of Erin, the Brehon who was chosen by St
Patrick to arbitrate in a question of homicide, and whose 'mouth'
the saint 'blessed'. The mode of choosing the chief Druid, by
election, has its counterpart in the institution of Tanistry,
which within historical times determined the succession to all
high office in Ireland, and which was hateful to the English, as
affording smaller security for order than their own less archaic
form of primogeniture. Nor is that all. The Prefaces in Irish to
the tracts contain a number of discussions on subjects which are
in no way legal, or which are forced into some connection with
law by the most violent expedients. They leave on the mind the
impression of being a patchwork of materials, probably of very
various antiquity, which happen to have been fond in the archives
of particular law-schools. Now, the Preface to the Senchus Mor
actually contains disquisitions on all the matters about which
Caesar declares the Druids to have been specially fond of
arguing. It in one place sets forth how God made the heaven and
the earth, but the account is not the least like the Mosaic
account. It goes off, as Caesar's Druids did, into a number of
extraordinary statements, 'de sideribus atque eorum motu', 'de
mundi ac terrarum magnitudine'. Among other things, it declares
that God fixed seven divisions from the firmament to the earth,
and that the distance he measured from the moon to the sun was
244 miles. 'And the first form of the firmament was ordained
thus: as the shell is about the egg, so is the firmament round
the earth in fixed suspension... there are six windows in each
part through the firmament to shed light through, so that there
are sixty-six windows in it, and a glass shutter for each window;
so that the whole firmament is a might sheet of crystal and a
protecting bulwark round the earth, with three heavens, and three
heavens about it; and the seventh was arrange in three heavens.
this last, however, is not the habitation of angels, but is like
a wheel revolving round, nd the firmament is thus revolting, and
also the seven planets, since the time when they were created'.
Parts of the passage reflect the astronomical notions known to
have been current in the Middle Ages, but much of it reads like a
fragment of a heathen cosmology, to which a later revision has
given a faint Christian colouring. The same Preface contains also
some curious speculations on the etymology of law-terms, and the
Preface to the Book of Aicill enters, among other things, into
the question of the difference between genus and species.
I suggest, therefore, that the same tendencies which produced
among the Celts of the Continent the class called the Druids
produced among the Celts of Ireland the class known to us as the
Brehons; nor does it seem to me difficult to connect the results
of these tendencies with other known phenomena of ancient
society. There is much reason to believe that the Tribe-Chief, or
King, whom the earliest Aryan records show us standing by the
side of the Popular Assembly, was priest and judge as well as
captain of the host. The later Aryan history shows us this
blended authority distributing or 'differentiating' itself, and
passing either to the Assembly or to a new class of depositaries.
Among the Achaeans of Homer, the Chief has ceased to be priest,
but he is still judge; and his judicial sentences, Themiotes, or
'dooms', however much they may be drawn in reality from
pre-exiting usage, are believed to be dictated to him from on
high. Among the Celts both of Gaul and of Ireland he has ceased
to be priest, and also probably to be judge, although some
measure of judicial authority may still belong to his office as a
'survival'. The order of change thus departs from that followed
in Athenian history, where the institution of kingship survived
only in the name of the King Archon, who was a judicial
functionary, and from that followed in Roman history, where the
Rex Sacrificulus was a hierophant or priest. The Popular
Assembly, meanwhile, which virtually attracted to itself the
whole civil and criminal jurisdiction of the Kings among the
Athenians, and which at Rome engrossed the whole administration
of criminal justice through the commissions it appointed, seems
to lose all judicial authority among the Celts. Perhaps I may be
permitted thus to describe the change I conceive to have taken
place among the Celts of Ireland. Themis, who in Homer is the
assessor of Zeus and the source of judicial inspiration to kings,
has (so to speak) set up for herself. Kings have delegated their
authority to a merely human assessor, and we see by the story
which begins the Senchus Mor that, even when a Saint is supposed
to be present, the inspiration of which he is the source does not
find expression through his lips, nor does it descend on the
King; it descends on the professional judge. When we obtain our
last glimpse of the class which has received this inheritance
from Chief or King -- the Brehons, Judges, or Authors of
Judgments -- they have sunk to the lowest depth of misery and
degradation through the English conquest. At an earlier date they
are seen divided into families or septs, the hereditary
law-advisers of some princely or powerful house. Hugh McEgan, who
wrote the note 'in his own father's book' which I read in the
last Lecture, was one of the hereditary Brehons attached to the
McCarthys. But, in the earliest Irish traditions, the functions
of the Brehon and the King run very much into one another. The
most ancient Brehons are described as of royal blood, sometimes
as king's sons. The Tanaists of the great Irish Chiefs, the
successors elected out of the kindred of each Chief to come after
him on his death, are said to have occasionally officiated as
judges; and one of the law-tracts, still unpublished, contains
the express rule that it is lawful for a king, though himself a
judge, to have a judge in his place. Cormac MacAirt, one of the
traditional authors of the Book of Aicill, was a King in
retirement. Apocryphal as his story may be, it is one of much
significance to the student of ancient institutions. He had been
accidently blinded of one eye,and is said to have been deposed
from his regal office or chieftiancy on account of the blemish.
Coirpri, his son and successor (says the Book of Aicill), 'in
every difficult case of judgment that came to him used to go and
ask his father about it, and his father used to say to him, "My
son, that thou mayest know"' -- and then proceeded to lay down
the law.
If, without committing ourselves to any specific theory
concerning the exact extent of the correspondence, we can assume
that there was substantial identity between the literary class
which produced the law-tracts and the literary order attributed
to the Celtic races by Caesar, we not only do something to
establish an historical conclusion perhaps more curious than
important, but we remove some serious difficulties in the
interpretation of the interesting and instructive body of archaic
law now before us. The difference between the Druids and their
successors, the Brehons, would in that case be mainly this: the
Brehons would be no longer priests. All sacerdotal or religious
authority must have passed, on the conversion of the Irish Celts,
to the 'tribes of the saints' -- to the missionary monastic
societies founded at all points of the island -- and to that
multitude of bishops dependent on them, whom it is so difficult
to reconcile with any of our preconceived ideas as to ancient
ecclesiastical organisation. The consequence would be that the
religious sanctions of the ancient laws, the supernatural
penalties threatened on their violation, would disappear, except
so far as the legal rules exactly coincided with the rules of the
new Christian code, the 'law of the letter.' Now, the want of a
sanction is occasionally one of the great difficulties in
understanding the Brehon law. Suppose a man disobeyed the rule or
resisted its application, what would happen? The learned writer
of one of the modern prefaces prefixed to the Third Volume of the
Ancient Laws contents that the administration of the Brehon
system consisted in references to arbitration; and I certainly
think myself that, so far as the system is known, it points to
that conclusion. The one object of the Brehons was to force
disputants to refer their quarrels to a Brehon, or to some person
in authority advised by a Brehon, and thus a vast deal of the law
tends to run into the Law of Distress, which declares the various
methods by which a man can be compelled through seizure of his
property to consent to an arbitration. But then one cannot help
perpetually feeling that the compulsion is weak as compared with
the stringency of the process of modern Courts of Justice; and
besides that, why should not the man attempted to be distrained
upon constantly resist with success? Doubtless the law provides
penalties for resistance; but where is the ultimate sanction?
Caesar supplies an answer, which must, I think, contain a portion
of the truth. He says that if a Celt of Gaul refused to abide by
a Druid judgment he was excommunicated: which was esteemed the
heaviest of penalties. Another example which I can give you of
the want or weakness of the sanction in the Brehon law is a very
remarkable one, and I shall recur to it hereafter. If you have a
legal claim against a man of a certain rank and you are desirous
of compelling him to discharge it, the Senchus Mor tells you to
'fast upon him.' 'Notice', it says, 'precedes distress in the
case of the inferior grades, except it be by persons of
distinction or upon persons of distinction; fasting precedes
distress in their case' ('Ancient Laws of Ireland,' vol. i, p.
113). The institution is unquestionably identical with one widely
diffused throughout the East, which is called by the Hindoos
'sitting dharna'. It consists in sitting at your debtor's door
and starving yourself till he pays. From the English point of
view the practice has always been considered barbarous and
immoral, and the Indian Penal Code expressly forbids it. It
suggests, however, the question -- what would follow if the
creditor simply allowed the debtor to starve? Undoubtedly the
Hindoo supposes that some supernatural penalty would follow;
indeed, he generally gives definiteness to it by retaining a
Brahmin to starve himself vicariously, and no Hindoo doubts what
would come of causing a Brahmin's death. We cannot but suppose
that the Brehon rule of fasting was once thought to have been
enforced in some similar way. Caesar states that the Druids
believed in the immortality and transmigration of the soul, and
considered it the key of their system. A Druid may thus very well
have taught that penal consequences in another world would follow
the creditor's death by starvation; and there is perhaps a pale
reflection of this doctrine in the language of the Senchus Mor:
'He who does not give a pledge to fasting is an evader of all; he
who disregards all things shall not be paid by God or man.' But
an Irish Brehon could scarcely make any distinct assertion on the
subject, since fasting had now become a specific ordinance of the
Christian Church, and its condition and spiritual effects were
expressly defined by the Christian priesthood. Theoretically, I
should state, a person who refused unjustly to yield to fasting
had his legal liabilities considerably increased, at least,
according to the dicta of the Brehon commentators; but such
provisions only bring us to the difficulty of which I first
spoke, and raise anew the question of the exact value of legal
rules at a period when Courts of Justice are not as yet armed
with resistless powers of compelling attendance and submission.
If we are justified in tracing the pedigree of the Brehon
Code to a system enforced by supernatural sanctions, we are able
to contrast it in various ways with other bodies of law in
respect of its mode of development. It closely resembles the
Hindoo law, inasmuch as it consists of what was in all
probability an original basis of Aryan usage vastly enlarged by a
superstructure of interpretation which a long succession of
professional commentators have elected; but it cannot have had
any such sacredness, and consequently any such authority, as the
Brahminical jurisprudence. Both the Brahmins and the Brehons
assume that Kings and Judges will enforce their law, and
emphatically enjoin on them its enforcement; but, while the
Brahmin could declare that neglect or disobedience would be
followed by endless degradation and torment, the Brehon could
only assert that the unlearned brother who pronounced a false
judgment would find blotches come on his cheeks, and that the
Chief who allowed sound usage to be departed from would bring bad
weather on his country. The development of the Brehon law was
again parallel to that which there is strong reason for supposing
the Roman law to have allowed in early times. The writer of the
Preface to the Third Volume, from which I have more than once
quoted, cites some observations which I published several years
ago on the subject of the extension of the Roman jurisprudence by
the agency known as the Responsa Prudentum, the accumulated
answers (or, as the Brehon phrase is, the judgments) of many
successive generations of famous Roman lawyers; and he adopts my
account as giving the most probable explanation of the growth of
the Brehon law. But in the Roman State a test was always applied
to the 'answers of the learned,' which was not applied, or not
systematically applied, to the judgments of the Brehons. We never
know the Romans except as subject to one of the strongest of
central governments, which armed the law courts with the force at
its command. Although the Roman system did not work exactly in
the way to which our English experience has accustomed us, there
can, of course, be no doubt that the ultimate criterion of the
validity of professional legal opinion at Rome, as elsewhere, was
the action of Courts of Justice enforcing rights and duties in
conformity with such opinion. But in ancient Ireland it is at
least doubtful whether there was ever, in our sense of the words,
a central government; it is also doubtful whether the public
force at the command of any ruler or rulers was ever
systematically exerted through the mechanism of Courts of
Justice; and it is at least a tenable view that the institutions
which stood in the place of Courts of Justice only exercised
jurisdiction through the voluntary submission of intending
litigants.
Perhaps, however, from our present point of view, the
strongest contrast is between the ancient law of Ireland and the
law of England at a period which an English lawyer would not call
recent. The administration of justice in England, from
comparatively early times, has been more strongly centralised
than in any other European country; but in Ireland there was no
central government to nerve the arm of the law. The process of
the English Courts has for centuries past been practically
irresistible; the process of the Irish Courts, even if it was
compulsory, was at the utmost extremely weak. The Irish law was
developed by hereditary commentators; but we in England have
always attributed far less authority than does any European
Continental community to the unofficial commentaries of the most
learned writers of textbooks. We obtain our law, and adjust it to
the needs of each successive generation, either through
legislative enactment or through the decisions of our judges on
isolated groups of facts established by the most laborious
methods. But, as I have already stated, the opinion to which I
incline is, that no part of the Brehon law had its origin in
legislation. The author of innovation and improvement was the
learned Brehon, and the Brehon appears to have invented at
pleasure the facts which he used as the framework for his legal
doctrine. His invention was necessarily limited by his
experience, and hence the cases suggested in the law-tracts
possess great interest, as throwing light on the society amid
which they were composed; but these cases seem to be purely
hypothetical, and only intended to illustrate the rule which
happens to be under discussion.
In the volume of my own to which I referred a few moments ago
I said of the early Roman law that 'great influence must have
been exercised (over it) by the want of any distinct check on the
suggestion or invention of possible questions. When the data can
be multiplied at pleasure, the facilities for evolving a general
rule are immensely increased. As the law is administered among
ourselves (in England) the judge cannot travel out of the sets of
facts exhibited before him or before his predecessors.
Accordingly, each group of circumstances which is adjudicated
upon receives, to employ a Gallicism, a sort of consecration. It
acquires certain qualities which distinguish it from every other
case, genuine or hypothetical.' I do not think it can be doubted
that this English practice of never declaring a legal rule
authoritatively until a state of facts arises to which it can be
fitted, is the secret of the apparent backwardness and barrenness
of English law at particular epochs, as contrasted with the
richness and reasonableness of other systems which it more than
rivals in its present condition. It is true, as I said before,
even of the Brehon law, that it does not wholly disappoint the
patriotic expectations entertained of it. When they are
disencumbered of archaic phrase and form, there are some things
remarkably modern in it. I quite agree with one of the Editors
that, in the ancient Irish Law of Civil Wrong, there is a
singularly close approach to modern doctrines on the subject of
Contributory Negligence; and I have found it possible to extract
from the quaint texts of the Book of Aicill some extremely
sensible rulings on the difficult subject of the Measure of
Damages, for which it would be vain to study the writings of Lord
Coke, though these last are relatively of much later date. But
the Brehon law pays heavily for this apparent anticipation of the
modern legal spirit. It must be confessed that most of it has a
strong air of fancifulness and unreality. It seems as if the
Brehon lawyer, after forming (let us say) a conception of a
particular kind of injury, set himself, as a sort of mental
exercise, to devise all the varieties of circumstance under which
the wrong could be committed, and then to determine the way in
which some traditional principle of redress could be applied to
the cases supposed. This indulgence of his imagination drew him
frequently into triviality or silliness, and led to an
extraordinary multiplication of legal detail. Four pages of the
Book of Aicill (a very large proportion of an ancient body of
law) are concerned with injuries received from dogs in
dog-fights, and they set forth in the most elaborate way the
modification of the governing rule required in the case of the
owners -- in the case of the spectators -- in the case of the
'impartial interposer' -- in the case of the 'half-interposer,'
i. e. the man who tries to separate the dogs with a bias in
favour of one of them -- in the case of an accidental looker-on
-- in the case of a youth under age, and in the case of an idiot.
The same law-tract deals also with the curious subjects of
injuries from a cat stealing in a kitchen, from women using their
distaffs in a woman-battle, and from bees, a distinction being
drawn between the case in which the sting draws blood and the
case in which it does not. Numberless other instances could be
given; but I repeat that all this is mixed up with much that even
now has juridical interest, and with much which in that state of
society had probably the greatest practical importance.
It is not, perhaps, as often noticed as it should be by
English writers on law that the method of enunciating legal
principles with which our Courts of Justice have familiarised us
is absolutely peculiar to England and to communities under the
direct influence of English practice. In all Western societies,
Legislation, which is the direct issue of the commands of the
sovereign state, tends more and more to become the exclusive
source of law; but still in all Continental countries other
authorities of various kinds are occasionally referred to, among
which are the texts of the Roman Corpus Juris, commentaries on
Codes and other bodies of written law, the unofficial writings of
famous lawyers, and other branches of the vast literature of law
holding at most a secondary place in the estimation of the
English Judges and Bar. Nowhere, however, is anything like the
same dignity as with us attributed to a decided 'case,' and I
have found it difficult to make foreign lawyers understand why
their English brethren should bow so implicitly to what Frenchmen
term the 'jurisprudence' of a particular tribunal. From one point
of view English law has doubtless suffered through this
reluctance to invent or imagine facts aS the groundwork of rules,
and it will continue to bear the marks of the injury until
legislative re-arrangement and re-statement fully disclose the
stores of common sense which are at present concealed by its
defects of language and form. On the other hand, these habits of
the English Courts seem to be closely connected with one of the
most honourable characteristics of the English system, its
extreme carefulness about facts. Nowhere else in the world is
there the same respect for a fact, unless the respect be of
English origin. The feeling is not shared by our European
contemporaries, and was not shared by our remote ancestors. It
has been said -- and the remark seems to me a very just one --
that in early times questions of fact are regarded as the
simplest of all questions. Such tests of truth as Ordeal and
Compurgation satisfy men's minds completely and easily, and the
only difficulty recognised is the discovery of the legal
tradition and its application to the results of the test. Up to a
certain point no doubt our own mechanism for the determination of
a fact is also a mere artifice. We take as our criterion of truth
the unanimous opinion of twelve men on statements made before
them. But then the mode of convincing, or attempting to convince,
them is exactly that which would have to be followed if it were
sought to obtain a decision upon evidence from the very highest
human intelligence. The old procedure was sometimes wholly
senseless, sometimes only distantly rational; the modern English
procedure is at most imperfect, and some of its imperfection
arises from the very constitution of human nature and human
society. I quite concur, therefore, in the ordinary professional
opinion that its view of facts and its modes of ascertaining them
are the great glory of English law. I am afraid, however, that
facts must always be the despair of the law reformer. Bentham
seems to me from several expressions to have supposed that if the
English Law of Evidence were re-constructed on his principles
questions of fact would cease to present any serious difficulty.
Almost every one of his suggestions has been adopted by the
Legislature, and yet enquiries into facts become more protracted
and complex than ever. The truth is that the facts of human
nature, with which Courts of Justice have chiefly to deal, are
far obscurer and more intricately involved than the facts of
physical nature; and the difficulty of ascertaining them with
precision constantly increases in our age, through the progress
of invention and enterprise, through the ever-growing
miscellaneousness of all modern communities, and through the ever
quickening play of modern social movements. Possibly we may see
English law take the form which Bentham hoped for and laboured
for; every successive year brings us in some slight degree nearer
to this achievement; and consequently, little as we may agree in
his opinion that all questions of law are the effect of some
judicial delusion or legal abuse, we may reasonably expect them
to become less frequent and easier of solution. But neither facts
nor the modes of ascertaining them tend in the least to simplify
themselves, and in no conceivable state of society will Courts of
Justice enjoy perpetual vacation.
I have been at some pains to explain what sort of authority
the Irish Brehon law did not, in my opinion, possess. The 'law of
nature' had lost all supernatural sanction, except so far as it
coincided with the 'law of the letter.' It had not yet acquired,
or had very imperfectly acquired, that binding power which law
obtains when the State exerts the public force through Courts of
Justice to compel obedience to it. Had it, then, any authority at
all; and if so, what sort of authority? Part of the answer to
this question I endeavoured to give three years ago ('Village
Communities, in the East and West,' pp. 56, 57); and though much
more might be said on the subject, I defer it till another
opportunity. So far as the Brehon law declared actual ancient and
indigenous practices, it shared in the obstinate vitality of all
customs when observed by a society distributed into corporate
natural groups. But, besides this, it had another source of
influence over men's minds, in the bold and never flagging
self-assertion of the class which expounded it. A portion of the
authority enjoyed by the Indian Brahminical jurisprudence is
undoubtedly to be explained in the same way. The Brehon could
not, like the Brahmin, make any such portentous assertion as that
his order sprang from the head of Brahma, that it was an
embodiment of perfect purity, and that the first teacher of its
lore was a direct emanation from God. But the Brehon did claim
that St. Patrick and other great Irish saints had sanctioned the
law which he declared, and that some of them had even revised it.
Like the Brahmin, too, he never threw away an opportunity of
affirming the dignity of his profession. In these law-tracts the
heads of this profession are uniformly placed, where Caesar
placed the Druids, on the same level with the highest classes of
Celtic society. The fines payable for injury to them, and their
rights of feasting at the expense of other classes (a form of
right which will demand much attention from us hereafter), are
adjusted to those of Bishops and Sings. It is more than likely
that the believing multitude ended by accepting these
pretensions. From what we know of that stage of thought we can
hardly set limits to the amount of authority spontaneously
conceded to the utterances of a sole literary class. It must have
struck many that the influence of the corresponding class in our
own modern society far exceeds anything which could have been
asserted of it from the mere consideration of our social
mechanism. There is, perhaps, an impression abroad that the
influence it exerts increases as history goes on, an impression
possibly produced and certainly strengthened by the brilliant
passages in which Lord Macaulay contrasted the well-paid literary
labour of his own day with the miseries of the literary hack of
Grub Street a century before. I think that this opinion, if
broadly stated, is at the very least doubtful. The class which,
to use a modern neologism, 'formulates' the ideas dimly conceived
by the multitude -- which saves it mental trouble by collecting
through generalisation, which is an essentially labour-saving
process, the scattered fragments of its knowledge and experience
-- has not always consisted of philosophers, historians, and
novelists, but had earlier representatives in poets, priests, and
lawyers. It is not at all a paradoxical opinion that these last
were its most powerful members. For, nowadays, it has to cope
with the critical faculty, more or less found everywhere, and
enormously strengthened by observation of the methods of physical
discovery. No authority of our day is possibly comparable with
that of the men who, in an utterly uncritical age, simply said of
a legal rule, 'So it has been laid down by the learned,' or used
the still more impressive formula, 'It is thus written.'
While, however, I fully believe that the Brehon law possessed
great authority, I think also that it was in all probability
irregularly and intermittently enforced, and that partial and
local departures from it were common all over ancient Ireland.
Anybody who interested himself in the question of its practical
application would have to encounter the very problems which are
suggested by the Brahminical Hindoo law. The student of this last
system, especially if he compares it with the infinity of local
usage practised in India, is constantly asking himself how far
was the law of the Brahmin jurists observed before the English
undertook to enforce it through their tribunals? The Editor of
the Third Volume of the Ancient Laws of Ireland has given a very
apposite example of a problem of the same kind (iii. 146), by
extracting from the Carew Papers the story of a famous dispute as
to the headship of the great irish house of O'Neill. Con O'Neill,
its chief, had two sons, Matthew and Shane. Matthew O'Neill was
heir to Con O'Neill's earldom of Tyrone, according to the
limitations of the patent. Shane O'Neill urged on the English
Government that these limitations were void, because the King, in
granting the earldom, could not have been aware that Matthew
O'Neill was an adulterine bastard, having been in truth born of
the wife of a smith in Dundalk. Shane O'Neill has been regarded
as the champion of purely Irish ideas (see Froude, 'English in
Ireland,' I. 43); but though the rule of legitimacy upon which he
insisted conforms to our notions, it is directly contrary to the
legal doctrine of the Book of Aicill, which in one of its most
surprising passages lays down formally the procedure by which the
natural father could bring into his family a son born under the
alleged circumstances of Matthew O'Neill, on paying compensation
to the putative parent. Unless Shane O'Neill's apparent ignorance
of this method of legitimation was merely affected for the
purpose of blinding the English Government, it would seem to
follow that the Book of Aicill, though its authorship was
attributed to King Cormac, had not an universally recognised
authority.
I do not know that the omission of the English, when they had
once thoroughly conquered the country, to enforce the Brehon law
through the Courts which they established, has ever been reckoned
among the wrongs of Ireland. But if they had done this. they
would have effected the very change which at a much later period
they brought about in India, ignorantly, but with the very best
intentions. They would have given immensely greater force and a
much larger sphere to a system of rules loosely and occasionally
administered before they armed them with a new authority. Even as
it was, I cannot doubt that the English did much to perpetuate
the Brehon law in the shape in which we find it. The Anglo-Norman
settlement on the east coast of Ireland acted like a running
sore, constantly Stating the Celtic regions beyond the Pale, and
deepening the confusion which prevailed there. If the country had
been left to itself, one of the great Irish tribes would almost
certainly have conquered the rest. All the legal ideas which,
little conscious as we are of their source, come to us from the
existence of a strong central government lending its vigour to
the arm of justice would have made their way into the Brehon law;
and the gap between the alleged civilisation of England and the
alleged barbarism of Ireland during much of their history, which
was in reality narrower than is commonly supposed, would have
almost wholly disappeared.
Before I close this chapter it is necessary to state that the
Brehon law has not been unaffected by the two main influences
which have made the modern law of Western Europe different from
the ancient, Christian morality and Roman jurisprudence. It has
been modified by Roman juridical ideas in some degree, though it
would be hazardous to lay down with any attempt at precision in
what degree. I have trustworthy information that, in the tracts
translated but not yet published, a certain number of Roman legal
maxims are cited, and one Rowan jurisconsult is mentioned by
name. So far as the published tracts afford materials for an
opinion, I am inclined to think that the influence of the Roman
law has been very slight, and to attribute it not to study of the
writings of the Roman lawyers, but to contact with Churchmen
imbued more Or less with Roman legal notions. We may be quite
sure that the Brehons were indebted to them for one conception
which is present in the tracts -- the conception of a Will; and
we may probably credit the Church with the comparatively advanced
development of another conception which we find here -- the
conception of a Contract. The origin of the rules concerning
testamentary bequest which are sometimes found in Western bodies
of law otherwise archaic has been much considered of late years;
and the weight of learned opinion inclines strongly to the view
that these rules had universally their source in Roman law, but
were diffused by the influence of the Christian clergy. This
assertion cannot be quite so confidently made of Contracts; but
the sacredness of bequests and the sacredness of promises were of
about equal importance to the Church, as the donee of pious
gifts; and, as regards the Brehon law, it is plain upon the face
of the published sub-tract which is chiefly concerned with
Contract, the Corus Bescna, that the material interests of the
Church furnished one principal motive for its compilation. The
Corus Bescna, in which, I may observe, a certain confusion (not
uncommon in ancient law) may be remarked between contracts and
grants, between the promise to give and the act or operation of
giving, contains some very remarkable propositions on the subject
of contract. Here, and in other parts of the Senchus Mor, the
mischiefs of breach of contract are set forth in the strongest
language. 'The world would be in a state of confusion if verbal
contracts were not binding.' 'There are three periods at which
the world dies: the period of a plague, of a general war, of the
dissolution of verbal contracts.' 'The world is worthless at the
time of the dissolution of contracts.' At first sight this looks
a good deal liker the doctrine of the eighteenth century than of
any century between the sixth and the sixteenth. Let us see,
however, what follows when the position thus broadly stated has
to be worked out. We come, in the Corus Bescna, upon the
following attempt at classification, which I fear would have
deeply shocked Jeremy Bentham and John Austin: 'How many kinds of
contracts are there?' asks the Brehon textwriter. 'Two,' is the
answer. 'A valid contract, and an invalid contract.' This, no
doubt, is absurd, but the explanation appears to be as follows.
The principle of the absolute sacredness of contracts was
probably of foreign origin, and was insisted upon for a
particular purpose. It was therefore laid down too broadly for
the actual state of the law and the actual condition of Irish
Celtic society. Under such circumstances a treatise on Contract
takes necessarily the form in great measure of a treatise on the
grounds of invalidity in contracts, on the manifold exceptions to
an over-broad general rule. Anciently, the power of contracting
is limited on all sides. It is limited by the rights of your.
family, by the rights of your distant kinsmen, by the rights of
your co-villagers, by the rights of your tribe, by the rights of
your Chief, and, if you contract adversely to the Church, by the
rights of the Church. The Corus Bescna is in great part a
treatise on these archaic limitations. At the same time some of
the modern grounds of invalidity are very well set forth, and the
merit may possibly be due to the penetration of Roman doctrine
into the Brehon law-schools.
Something must be said on the extent to which Christian
opinion has leavened these Brehon writings. Christianity has
certainly had considerable negative influence over them. It
became no longer possible for the Brehon to assert that the
transgressor of his rules would incur a supernatural penalty, and
the consequences of this were no doubt important. But still, as
you have seen, in the case of 'fasting on a man,' or 'sitting
dharna,' the heathen rule remained in the system, though its
significance was lost. Again, one positive result of the
reception by the Brehons of the so-called 'law of the letter'
appears to have been the development of a great mass of rules
relating to the territorial rights of the Church, and these
constitute a very interesting department of the Brehon law. But
there has certainty been nothing like an intimate
interpenetration of ancient Irish law by Christian principle. If
this kind of influence is to be looked for anywhere, it must be
in the law of Marriage, and the cognate branches of Divorce,
Legitimacy, and Inheritance. These, however, are the very
portions of the Brehon law which have been dwelt upon by writers
convinced that, as regards the relations of the sexes, the
primitive Irish were near akin to those Celts of Britain of whose
practices Caesar had heard. (B. G., v. 14.) The 'Book of Aicill'
provides for the legitimation not only of the bastard, but of the
adulterine bastard, and measures the compensation to be paid to
the putative father. The tract on 'Social Connections ' appears
to assume that the temporary cohabitation of the sexes is part of
the accustomed order of society, and on this assumption it
minutely regulates the mutual rights of the parties, showing an
especial care for the interests of the woman, even to the extent
of reserving to her the value of her domestic services during her
residence in the common dwelling. One remark ought, however, to
be made on these provisions of the Brehon law. It is not
inconceivable that, surprising as they are, they may be the index
to a social advance. Caesar plainly found the Celts of the
Continent polygamous, living in families held together by
stringent Paternal Power. He, a Roman, familiar with a Patria
Potestas as yet undecayed, thinks it worthy of remark that the
head of a Gallic household had the power of life and death over
his wives as well as his children, and notices with astonishment
that, when a husband died under suspicious circumstances, his
wives were treated with the same cruelty as a body of household
slaves at Rome whose master had been killed by an unknown hand.
(B. G., vi. 19.) Now, though very much cannot be confidently said
about the transition (which, nevertheless, is an undoubted fact)
of many societies from polygamy to monogamy under influences
other than those of religion, it may plausibly be conjectured
that here and there it had its cause in liberty of divorce. The
system which permitted a plurality of wives may have passed into
the system which forbade more than one wife at a time, but which
did not go farther. The monogamy of the modern and Western world
is, in fact, the monogamy of the Romans, from which the license
of divorce has been expelled by Christian morality. There are
hardly any materials for an opinion upon the degree of influence
exercised by the Church over the transformation of
marriage-relations in Ireland, but there are several indications
that the ecclesiastical rules as to the conditions of a valid
marriage established themselves very slowly among the ruder races
on the outskirts of what had been the Roman Empire. Mr Burton
('History of Scotland,' ii. 213), in speaking of the number of
illegitimate claimants who brought their pretensions to the Crown
of Scotland before Edward the First, observes: 'That they should
have pushed their claims only shows that the Church had not yet
absolutely established the rule that from her and her ceremony
and sacrament could alone come the union capable of transmitting
a right of succession to offspring.' The tract on 'Social
Connexions' notices a 'first' wife, and the recognition may be
attributable to the Church, but on the whole my impression
certainly is that the extremely ascetic form under which
Christianity was introduced into Ireland was unfavourable to its
obtaining a hold on popular morality. The common view seems to
have been that chastity was the professional virtue of a special
class, for the Brehon tracts, which make the assumptions I have
described as to the morals of the laity, speak of irregularity of
life in a monk or bishop with the strongest reprobation and
disgust. At the present moment Ireland is probably the one of all
Western countries in which the relations of the sexes are most
nearly on the footing required by the Christian theory; nor is
there any reasonable doubt that this result has been brought
about in the main by the Roman Catholic clergy. But this
purification of morals was effected during the period through
which monks and monasticism were either expelled from Ireland or
placed under the ban of the law.
I will take this opportunity of saying that the influence of
Christianity on a much more famous system than the Brehon law has
always seemed to me to be greatly overstated by M. Troplong and
other well-known juridical writers. There is, of course, evidence
of Christian influence on Roman law in the disabilities imposed
on various classes of heretics and in the limitations of that
liberty of divorce which belonged to the older jurisprudence.
But, even in respect of divorce, the modifications strike me as
less than might have been expected from what we know of the
condition of opinion in the Roman world; and, as regards certain
improvements said to have been introduced by Christianity into
the Imperial law of slavery, they were probably quickened by its
influence, but they began in principles which were of Stoical
rather than of Christian origin. I do not question the received
opinion that Christianity greatly mitigated and did much to
abolish personal and predial slavery in the West, but the
Continental lawyers of whom I spoke considerably antedate its
influence, and take far too little account of the prodigious
effects subsequently produced by the practical equality of all
men within the pale of the Catholic priesthood. But I principally
deprecate these statements, which in some countries have almost
become professional commonplaces, for two reasons. They slur over
a very instructive fact, the great unmalleability of all bodies
of law. and they obscure an interesting and yet unsettled,
problem, the origin of the Canon law. The truth seems to be that
the Imperial Roman law did not satisfy the morality of the
Christian communities, and this is the most probable reason why
another body of rules grew up by its side and ultimately almost
rivalled it.
The most recent researches into the primitive history of
society point to the conclusion that the earliest tie which
knitted men together in communities was Consanguinity or Kinship.
The subject has been approached of late years from several
different sides, and there has been much dispute as to what the
primitive blood-relationship implied, and how it arose; but there
has been general agreement as to the fact I have stated. The
caution is perhaps needed that we must not form too loose a
conception of the kinship which once stood in the place of the
multiform influences which are now the cement of human societies.
It was regarded as an actual bond of union, and in no respect as
a sentimental one. The notion of what, for want of a better
phrase, I must call a moral brotherhood in the whole human race
has been steadily gaining ground during the whole course of
history, and we have now a large abstract term answering to this
notion -- Humanity, he most powerful of the agencies which have
brought about this broader and laxer view of kinship has
undoubtedly been Religion, and indeed one great Eastern religion
extended it until for some purposes it embraced all sentient
nature. All this modern enlargement of the primitive conception
of kinship must be got rid of before we can bring it home to
ourselves. There was no brotherhood recognised by our savage
forefathers except actual consanguinity regarded as a fact. If a
man was not of kin to another there was nothing between them. He
was an enemy to be slain, or spoiled, or hated, as much as the
wild beasts upon which the tribe made war, as belonging indeed to
the craftiest and the cruellest order of wild animals. It would
scarcely be too strong an assertion that the dogs which followed
the camp had more in common with it than the tribesmen of an
alien and unrelated tribe.
The tribes of men with which the student of jurisprudence is
concerned are exclusively those belonging to the races now
universally classed, on the ground of linguistic affinities, as
Aryan and Semitic. Besides these he has at most to take into
account that portion of the outlying mass of mankind which has
lately been called Uralian, the Turks, Hungarians, and Finns. The
characteristic of all these races, when in the tribal state, is
that the tribes themselves, and all subdivisions of them, are
conceived by the men who compose them as descended from a single
male ancestor. Such communities see the Family group with which
they are familiar to be made up of the descendants of a single
living man, and of his wife or wives; and perhaps they are
accustomed to that larger group, formed of the descendants of a
single recently deceased ancestor, which still survives in India
as a compact assemblage of blood-relatives, though it is only
known to us through the traces it has left in our Tables of
Inheritance. The mode of constituting groups of kinsmen which
they see proceeding before their eyes they believe to be
identical with the process by which the community itself was
formed. Thus the theoretical assumption is that all the tribesmen
are descended from some common ancestor, whose descendants have
formed sub-groups, which again have branched off into others,
till the smallest group of all, the existing Family, is reached.
I believe I may say that there is substantial agreement as to the
correctness of these statements so long as they are confined to
the Aryan, Semitic, and Uralian races. At most it is asserted
that, among the recorded usages of portions of these races, there
are obscure indications of another and an earlier state of
things. But then a very different set of assertions from these
are made concerning that large part of the human race which
cannot be classed as Aryan, Semitic, or Uralian. It is, first of
all, alleged that there is evidence of the wide prevalence among
them of ideas on the subject of Consanguinity which are
irreconcileable with the assumption of common descent from a
single ancestor. Next, it is pointed out that some small,
isolated, and very barbarous communities -- perhaps long hidden
in inaccessible Indian valleys, or within the ring of a coral
reef in the Southern Seas -- still follow practices which it
would be incorrect and unjust to call immoral, because, in the
view we are considering, they are older than morality. The
suggestion is finally made that if these practices were, in an
older stage of the world's history, very much more widely
extended than at present, the abnormal, non-Aryan, non-Semitic,
non-Uralian notions about kinship of which I have spoken would
find their explanation. If, indeed, the conclusion here pointed
at expresses the truth, and if these practices were really at one
time universal, it would be an undeserved compliment to the human
race to say that it once followed the ways of the lower animals,
since, in point of fact, all the lower animals do not follow the
practices thus attributed to them. But, whatever be the interest
of such enquiries, they do not concern us till the Kinship of the
higher races can be distinctly shown to have grown out of the
Kinship now known only to the lower, and even then they concern
us only remotely. No doubt several recent writers do believe in
the descent of one form of consanguinity from the other. Mr Lewis
Morgan, of New York, the author of a remarkable and very
magnificent volume on 'Systems of Consanguinity and Affinity in
the Human Family,' published by the Smithsonian Institute at
Washington, reckons no less than ten stages (p: 486) through
which communities founded on kinship have passed before that form
of the family was developed out of which the Aryan tribes
conceive themselves to have sprung. But Mr Morgan also says of
the system known upon the evidence actually to prevail among the
Aryan, Semitic, and Uralian divisions of mankind that (p. 469) it
'manifestly proceeds upon the assumption of the existence of
marriage between single pairs, and of the certainty of parentage
through the marriage relation.' 'Hence,' he adds, 'it must have
come into existence after the establishment of marriage between
single pairs.'
A remark of considerable importance to the student of early
usage has now to be made respecting the bond of union recognised
by these greater races. Kinship, as the tie binding communities
together, tends to be regarded as the same thing with subjection
to a common authority. The notions of Power and Consanguinity
blend, but they in nowise SUpersede one another. We have a
familiar example of this mixture of ideas in the subjection of
the smallest group, the Family, to its patriarchal head. Wherever
we have evidence of such a group, it becomes difficult to say
whether the persons compiled in it are most distinctly regarded
as kinsmen, or as servile or semi-servile dependents of the
person who was the source of their kinship. The confusion,
however, if we may so style it, of kinship with subjection to
patriarchal power is observable also in the larger groups into
which the Family expands. In some cases the Tribe can hardly be
otherwise described than as the group of men subject to some one
chieftain. This peculiar blending of ideas is undoubtedly
connected with the extension (a familiar fact to most of us) of
the area of ancient groups of kindred by artifices or fictions.
Just as we find the Family recruited by strangers brought under
the paternal power of its head by adoption, so we find the Tribe,
or Clan, including a number of persons, in theory of kin to it,
yet in fact connected with it only by common dependence on the
Chief. I do not affect to give any simple explanation of the
subjection of the various assemblages of kindred to forms of
power of which the patriarchal power of the head of the family is
the type. Doubtless it is partly to be accounted for by
deep-seated instincts. But Mr Morgan's researches seem to me to
have supplied another partial explanation. He has found that
among rude and partially nomad communities great numbers of
kindred, whom we should keep apart in mind, and distinguish from
one another in language, are grouped together in great classes
and called by the same general names. Every man is related to an
extraordinary number of men called his brothers, to an
extraordinary number called his sons, to an extraordinary number
called his uncles. Mr Morgan explains the fact in his own way,
but he points out the incidental convenience served by this
method of classification and nomenclature. Though the point may
not at first strike us, kinship is a clumsy basis for communities
of any size, on account of the difficulty which the mind, and
particularly the untutored mind, has in embracing all the persons
bound to any one man by tie of blood, and therefore (which is the
important matter) connected with him by common responsibilities
and rights. A great extension and considerable relaxation of the
notion of kinship gets over the difficulty among the lower races,
but it may be that, among the higher, Patriarchal Power answers
the same object. It simplifies the conceptions of kinship and of
conjoint responsibility, first in the Patriarchal Family and
ultimately -- in the Clan or Tribe.
We have next to consider the epoch, reached at some time by
all the portions of mankind destined to civilisation, at which
tribal communities settle down upon a definite space of land. The
liveliest account which I have read of this process occurs in an
ancient Indian record which has every pretension to authenticity.
In a very interesting volume published by the Government of
Madras, and called 'Papers on Mirasi Right' (Madras, 1862), there
are printed some ancient Memorial Verses, as they are called,
which describe the manner in which the Vellalee, a possibly Aryan
tribe, followed their chief into Tondeimandalam, a region roughly
corresponding with a state once famous in modern Indian history,
Arcot. There the Vellalee conquered and extirpated, or enslaved,
some more primitive population and took permanent possession of
its territory. The poetess -- for the lines are attributed to a
woman -- compares the invasion to the flowing of the juice of the
sugar-cane over a flat surface. ('Mirasi Papers,' p. 233.) The
juice crystallises, and the crystals are the various
village-communities. In the middle is one lump of peculiarly fine
sugar, the place where is the temple of the god. Homely as is the
image, it seems to me in one respect peculiarly felicitous. It
represents the tribe, though moving in a fused mass of men, as
containing within itself a principle of coalescence which began
to work as soon as the movement was over. The point is not always
recollected. Social history is frequently considered as beginning
with the tribal settlement, and as though no principles of union
had been brought by the tribe from an older home. But we have no
actual knowledge of any aboriginal or autochthonous tribe.
Wherever we have any approximately trustworthy information
concerning the tribes which we discern in the far distance of
history, they have always come from some more ancient seat. The
Vellalee, in the Indian example, must have been agriculturists
somewhere, since they crystallised at once into
village-communities.
It has long been assumed that the tribal constitution of
society belonged at first to nomad communities, and that, when
associations of men first settled down upon land, a great change
came over them. But the manner of transition from nomad to
settled life, and its effects upon custom and idea, have been too
much described, as it seems to me, from mere conjecture of the
probabilities; and the whole process, as I have just observed,
has been conceived as more abrupt than such knowledge as we have
would lead us to believe it to have been. attention has thus been
drawn off from one assertion on this subject which may be made, I
think, upon trustworthy evidence -- that, from the moment when a
tribal community settles down finally upon a definite space of
land, the Land begins to be the basis of society in place of the
Kinship. The change is extremely gradual, and in some particulars
it has not even now been fully accomplished, but it has been
going on through the whole course of history. The constitution of
the Family through actual blood-relationship is of course an
observable fact, but, for all groups of men larger than the
Family, the Land on which they live tends to become the bond of
union between them, at the expense of Kinship, ever more and more
vaguely conceived. We can trace the development of idea both in
the large and now extremely miscellaneous aggregation s of men
combined in States or Political Communities, and also in the
smaller aggregations collected in Village-Communities and Manors,
among whom landed property took its rise. The barbarian invaders
of the Western Roman Empire, though not uninfluenced by former
settlements in older homes, brought back to Western Europe a mass
of tribal ideas which the Roman dominion had banished from it;
but, from the moment of their final occupation of definite
territories, a transformation of these ideas began. Some years
ago I pointed out ('Ancient Law,' pp. 103 et seq.) the evidence
furnished by the history of International Law that the notion of
territorial sovereignty, which is the basis of the international
system, and which is inseparably connected with dominion over a
definite area of land, very slowly substituted itself for the
notion of tribal sovereignty. Clear traces of the change are to
be seen in the official style of kings. Of our own kings, King
John was the first who always called himself King of England.
(Freeman, 'Norman Conquest,' I. 82, 84.) His predecessors
commonly or always called themselves Kings of the English. The
style of the king reflected the older tribal sovereignty for a
much longer time in France. The title of King of France may no
doubt have come into use in the vernacular soon after the
accession of the dynasty of Capet, but it is an impressive fact
that, even at the time of the Massacre of St. Bartholomew, the
Kings of France were still in Latin 'Reges Francorum;' and Henry
the Fourth only abandoned the designation because it could not be
got to fit in conveniently on his coins with the title of King of
Navarre, the purely feudal and territorial principality of the
Bourbons. (Freeman, loc. cit.) We may bring home to ourselves the
transformation of idea in another way. England was once the
country which Englishmen inhabited. Englishmen are now the people
who inhabit England. The descendants of our forefathers keep up
the tradition of kinship by calling themselves men of English
race, but they tend steadily to become Americans and Australians.
I do not say that the notion of consanguinity is absolutely lost;
but it is extremely diluted, and quite subordinated to the newer
view of the territorial constitution of nations. The blended
ideas are reflected in such an expression as 'Fatherland,' which
is itself an index to the fact that our thoughts cannot separate
national kinship from common country. No doubt it is true that in
our day the older conception of national union through
consanguinity has seemed to be revived by theories which are
sometimes called generally theories of Nationality, and of which
particular forms are known to us as Pan-Sclavism and
Pan-Teutonism. Such theories are in truth a product of modern
philology, and have grown out of the assumption that linguistic
affinities prove community of blood. But wherever the political
theory of Nationality is distinctly conceived, it amounts to a
claim that men of the same race shall be included, not in the
same tribal, but in the same territorial sovereignty.
We can perceive, from the records of the Hellenic and Latin
city-communities, that there, and probably over a great part of
the world, the substitution of common territory for common race
as the basis of national union was slow, and not accomplished
without very violent struggles. 'The history of political ideas
begins,' I have said elsewhere, 'with the assumption that kinship
in blood is the sole possible ground of community in political
functions; nor is there any of those subversions of feeling which
we emphatically term revolutions so startling and so complete as
the change which is accomplished when some other principle --
such as that, for instance, of local contiguity -- establishes
itself for the first time as the basis of common political
action.' The one object of ancient democracies was, in fact, to
be counted of kin to the aristocracies, simply on the ground that
the aristocracy of old citizens, and the democracy of new, lived
within the same territorial circumscription. The goal was reached
in time both by the Athenian Demos and by the Roman Plebs; but
the complete victory of the Roman popular party was the source of
influences which have not spent themselves at the present moment,
since it is one of the causes why the passage from the Tribal to
the Territorial conception of Sovereignty was much more easy and
imperceptible in the modern than in the older world. I have
before stated that a certain confusion, or at any rate
indistinctness of discrimination, between consanguinity and
common subjection to power is traceable among the rudiments of
Aryan thought, and no doubt the mixture of notions has helped to
bring about that identification of common nationality with common
allegiance to the King, which has greatly facilitated the
absorption of new bodies of citizens by modern commonwealths. But
the majesty with which the memory of the Roman Empire surrounded
all kings has also greatly contributed to it, and without the
victory of the Roman Plebeians there would never have been, I
need hardly say, any Roman Empire.
The new knowledge which has been rapidly accumulating of late
years enables us to track precisely the same transmutation of
ideas amid the smaller groups of kinsmen settled on land and
forming, not Commonwealths, but Village-Communities. The
historian of former days laboured probably under no greater
disadvantage than that caused by his unavoidable ignorance of the
importance of these communities, and by the necessity thus
imposed upon him of confining his attention to the larger
assemblages of tribesmen. It has often, indeed, been noticed that
a Feudal Monarchy was an exact counterpart of a Feudal Manor, but
the reason of the correspondence is only now beginning to dawn
upon us, which is, that both of them were in their origin bodies
of assumed kinsmen settled on land and undergoing the same
transmutation of ideas through the fact of settlement. The
history of the larger groups ends in the modern notions of
Country and Sovereignty; the history of the smaller in the modern
notions of Landed Property. The two courses of historical
development were for a long while strictly parallel, though they
have ceased to be so now.
The naturally organised, self-existing, Village-Community can
no longer be claimed as an institution specially characteristic
of the Aryan races. M. de Laveleye, following Dutch authorities,
has described these communities as they are found in Java; and M
Renan has discovered them among the obscurer Semitic tribes in
Northern Africa. But, wherever they have been examined, the
extant examples of the group suggest the same theory of its
origin which Mr Freeman ('Comparative Politics,' p. 103) has
advanced concerning the Germanic village-community or Mark; 'This
lowest political unit was at first, here (i. e. in England) as
elsewhere, formed of men bound together by a tie of kindred, in
its first estate natural, in a later stage either of kindred
natural or artificial.' The evidence, however, is now quite ample
enough to furnish us with strong indications not only of the mode
in which these communities began, but of the mode in which they
transformed themselves. The world, in fact, contains examples of
cultivating groups in every stage, from that in which they are
actually bodies of kinsmen, to that in which the merest shadow of
consanguinity survives and the assemblage of cultivators is held
together solely by the land which they till in common. The great
steps in the scale of transition seem to me to be marked by the
Joint Family of the Hindoos, by the House-Community of the
Southern Sclavonians, and by the true Village-Community, as it is
found first in Russia and next in India. The group which I have
placed at the head, the Hindoo-Joint Family, is really a body of
kinsmen, the natural and adoptive descendants of a known
ancestor. Although the modern law of India gives such facilities
for its dissolution that it is one of the most unstable of social
compounds, and rarely lasts beyond a couple of generations,
still, so long as it lasts, it has a legal corporate existence,
and exhibits, in the most perfect state, that community of
proprietary enjoyment which has been so often observed, and (let
me add) so often misconstrued, in cultivating societies of
archaic type. 'According to the true notion of a joint undivided
Hindoo family,' said the Privy Council, 'no member of the family,
while it remains undivided, can predicate of the joint undivided
property that he, that particular member, has a certain definite
share.... The proceeds of undivided property must be brought,
according to the theory, into the common chest or purse, and then
dealt with according to the modes of enjoyment of the members of
an undivided family.' (Per Lord Westbury, Appovier v. Rama Subba
Aiyan, 11 Moore's Indian Appeals, 75.) While, however, these
Hindoo families, 'joint in food, worship, and estate,' are
constantly engaged in the cultivation of land, and dealing with
its produce 'according to the modes of enjoyment of an undivided
family,' they are not village-communities. They are only
accidentally connected with the land, however extensive their
landed property may be. What holds them together is not land, but
consanguinity, and there is no reason why they should not occupy
themselves, as indeed they frequently do, with trade or with the
practice of a handicraft. The House-Community, which comes next
in the order of development, has been examined by M. de Laveleye
(P. et 8. F. P., p. 201), and by Mr. Patterson ('Fortnightly
Review,' No. xliv.), in Croatia, Dalmatia, and Illyria, countries
which, though newer to us than India, have still much in common
with the parts of the East not brought completely under Mahometan
influences; but there is reason to believe that neither Roman law
nor feudalism entirely crushed it even in Western Europe. It is a
remarkable fact that assemblages of kinsmen, almost precisely the
counterpart of the House-Communities surviving among the
Sclavonians, were observed by M. Dupin, in 1840, in the French
Department of the Nièvre, and were able to satisfy him that even
in 1500 they had been accounted ancient. These House-Communities
seem to me to be simply the Joint-Family of the Hindoos, allowed
to expand itself without hindrance and settled for ages on the
land. All the chief characteristics of the Hindoo institution are
here -- the common home and common table, which we always in
theory the centre of Hindoo family life; the collective enjoyment
of property and its administration by an elected manager.
Nevertheless, many instructive change s have begun which show how
such a group modifies itself in time The community is a community
of kinsmen; but, though the com m on ancestry is probably to a
great extent real, the tradition has become weak enough to admit
of considerable artificiality being introduced into the
association, as it is found at any given moment, through the
absorption of strangers from outside. Meantime, the land tends to
become the true basis of the group; it is recognized as of
pre-eminent importance to its vitality, and it remains common
property, while private ownership is allowed to show itself in
moveables and cattle. In the true Village-Community, the common
dwelling and common table which belong alike to the Joint Family
and to the House-Community, are no longer to be found. The
village itself is an assemblage of houses, contained indeed
within narrow limits, but composed of separate dwellings, each
jealously guarded from the intrusion of a neighbour. The village
lands are no longer the collective property of the community; the
arable lands have been divided between the various households;
the pasture lands have been partially divided; only the waste
remains in common. In comparing the two extant types of
Village-Community which have been longest examined by good
observers, the Russian and the Indian, we may be led to think
that the traces left on usage and idea by the ancient collective
enjoyment are faint exactly in proportion to the decay of the
theory of actual kinship among the co-villagers. The Russian
peasants of the same village really believe, we are told, in
their common ancestry, and accordingly we find that in Russia the
arable lands of the village are periodically re-distributed, and
that the village artificer, even should he carry his tools to a
distance, works for the profit of his co-villagers. In India,
though the villagers are still a brotherhood, and though
membership in the brotherhood separates a man from the world
outside, it is very difficult to say in what the tie is conceived
as consisting. Many palpable facts in the composition of the
community are constantly inconsistent with the actual descent of
the villagers from any one ancestor. Accordingly, private
property in land has grown up, though its outlines are not always
clear; the periodical re-division of the domain has become a mere
tradition, or is only practised among the ruder portions of the
race; and the results of the theoretical kinship are pretty much
confined to the duty of submitting to common rules of cultivation
and pasturage, of abstaining from sale or alienation without the
consent of the co-villagers, and (according to some opinions) of
refraining from imposing a rack-rent upon members of the same
brotherhood. Thus, the Indian Village-Community is a body of men
held together by the land which they occupy: the idea of common
blood and descent has all but died out. A few steps more in the
same course of development -- and these the English law is
actually hastening -- will diffuse the familiar ideas of our own
country and time throughout India; the Village-Community will
disappear, and landed property,in the full English sense, will
come into existence. Mr Freeman tells us that Uffington,
Gillingham, and Tooting were in all probability English
village-communities originally settled by the Uffingas,
Gillingas, and Totingas, three Teutonic joint-families. But
assuredly all men who live in Tooting do not consider themselves
brothers; they barely acknowledge duties imposed on them by their
mutual vicinity; their only real tie is through their common
country.
The 'natural communism' of the primitive cultivating groups
has sometimes been described of late years, and more particularly
by Russian writers, as an anticipation of the most advanced and
trenchant democratic theories. No account of the matter could in
my judgment be more misleading. If such terms as 'aristocratic'
and 'democratic' are to be used at all, I think it would be a
more plausible statement that the transformation and occasional
destruction of the village-communities were caused, over much of
the world, by the successful assault of a democracy on an
aristocracy. The secret of the comparatively slight departure of
the Russian village-communities from what may be believed to have
been the primitive type, appears to me to lie in the ancient
Russian practice of colonisation, by which swarms were constantly
thrown off from the older villages to settle somewhere in the
enormous wastes; but the Indian communities, placed in a region
of which the population has from time immemorial been far denser
than in the North, bear many marks of past contests between the
ancient brotherhood of kinsmen and a class of dependants outside
it struggling for a share in the land, or for the right to use it
on easy terms. I am aware that there is some grotesqueness at
first sight in a comparison of Indian villagers, in their
obscurity and ignorance, and often in their squalid misery, to
the citizens of Athens or Rome; yet no tradition concerning the
origin of the Latin and Hellenic states seems more trustworthy
than that which represents them as formed by the coalescence of
two or more village-communities, and indeed, even in their most
glorious forms, they appear to me throughout their early history
to belong essentially to that type. It has often occurred to me
that Indian functionaries, in their vehement controversies about
the respective rights of the various classes which make up the
village-community, are unconsciously striving to adjust, by a
beneficent arbitration, the claims and counter-claims of the
Eupatrids and the Demos, of the Populus and the Plebs. There is
even reason to think that one well-known result of long civil
contention in the great states of antiquity has shown itself
every now and then in the village-communities, and that all
classes have had to submit to that sort of authority which
assumed its most innocent shape in the office of the Roman
Dictator, its more odious in the usurpation of the Greek Tyrant.
The founders of a part of one modern European aristocracy, the
Danish, are known to have been originally peasants who fortified
their houses during deadly village struggles and then used their
advantage.
Such commencements of nobility as that to which I have just
referred, appear, however, to have been exceptional in the
Western world, and other causes must be assigned for that great
transformation of the Village-Community which has been carried
out everywhere in England, a little less completely in Germany,
much less in Russia and in all Eastern Europe. I have attempted
in another work ('Village-Communities in the East and West,' pp.
131 et seq.) to give an abridged account of all that is known or
has been conjectured on the subject of that 'Feudalisation of
Europe' which has had the effect of converting the Mark into the
Manor, the Village-Community into the Fief; and I shall presently
say much on the new light which the ancient laws of Ireland have
thrown on the early stages of the process. At present I will only
observe that, when completed, its effect was to make the Land the
exclusive bond of union between men. The Manor or Fief was a
social group wholly based upon the possession of land, and the
vast body of feudal rules which clustered round this central fact
are coloured by it throughout. That the Land is the foundation of
the feudal system has, of course, been long and fully recognised;
but I doubt whether the place of the fact in history has been
sufficiently understood. It marks a phase in a course of change
continued through long ages and in spheres much larger than that
of landed property. At this point the notion of common kinship
has been entirely lost. The link between Lord and Vassal produced
by Commendation is of quite a different kind from that produced
by Consanguinity. When the relation which it created had lasted
some time, there would have been no deadlier insult to the lord
than to attribute to him a common origin with the great bulk of
his tenants. Language still retains a tinge of the hatred and
contempt with which the higher members of the feudal groups
regarded the lower; and the words of abuse traceable to this
aversion are almost as strong as those traceable to differences
of religious belief. There is, in fact, little to choose between
villain, churl, miscreant, and boor.
The break-up of the feudal group, far advanced in most
European countries, and complete in France and England, has
brought us to the state of society in which we live. To write its
course and causes would be to re-write most of modern history,
economical as well as political. It is not, however, difficult to
see that without the ruin of the smaller social groups, and the
decay of the authority which, whether popularly or autocratically
governed, they possessed over the men composing them, we should
never have had several great conceptions which lie at the base of
our stock of thought. Without this collapse, we should never have
had the conception of land as an exchangeable commodity,
differing only from others in the limitation of the supply; and
hence, without it, some famous chapters of the science of
Political economy would not have been written. Without it, we
should not have had the great increase in modern times of the
authority of the State-one of many names for the more extensive
community held together by common country. Consequently, we
should not have had those theories which are the foundation of
the most recent systems of jurisprudence -- the theory of
Sovereignty, or (in other words) of a portion in each community
possessing unlimited coercive force over the rest -- and the
theory of Law as exclusively the command of a sovereign One or
Number. We should, again, not have had the fact which answers to
these theories -- the ever-increasing activity of Legislatures;
and, in all probability, that famous test of the value of
legislation, which its author turned into a test of the soundness
of morals, would never have been devised -- the greatest
happiness of the greatest number.
In saying that the now abundant phenomena of primitive
ownership open to our observation strongly suggest that the
earliest cultivating groups were formed of kinsmen, that these
gradually became bodies of men held together by the land which
they cultivated, and that Property in Land (as we now understand
it) grew out of the dissolution of these latter assemblages, I
would not for a moment be understood to assert that this series
of changes can be divided into stages abruptly separated from one
another. The utmost that can be affirmed is that certain periods
in this history are distinguished by the predominance, though not
the exclusive existence, of ideas proper to them. Here, as
elsewhere, the world is full of 'survivals,' and the view of
society as held together by kinship still survives when it is
beginning to be held together by land. Similarly, the feudal
conception of social relations still exercises. powerful
influence when land has become a merchantable commodity. There is
no country in which the theory of land as a form of property like
any other has been more unreservedly accepted than our own. Yet
English lawyers live in faece feodorum. Our law is saturated with
feudal principles, and our customs and opinions are largely
shaped by them. Indeed, within the last few years we have even
discovered that vestiges of the village-community have not been
wholly effaced from our law, our usages, and our methods of
tillage.
The caution that the sequence of these stages does not imply
abrupt transition from any one to the next seems to me especially
needed by the student of the Ancient Laws of Ireland. Dr
Sullivan, of whose Introduction to the lately published lectures
of O'Curry I have already spoken, dwells with great emphasis on
the existence of private property among the ancient Irish, and on
the jealousy with which it was guarded. But though it is very
natural that a learned Irishman, stung by the levity which has
denied to his ancestors all civilised institutions, should attach
great importance to the indications of private ownership in the
Brehon law, I must say that they do not, in my judgment,
constitute its real interest. The instructiveness of the Brehon
tracts, at least to the student of legal history, seems to me to
arise from their showing that institutions of modern stamp may be
in existence with a number of rules by their side which savour of
another and a greatly older order of ideas. It cannot be doubted,
I think, that the primitive notion of kinship, as the cement
binding communities together, survived longer among the Celts of
Ireland and the Scottish Highlands than in any Western society,
and that it is stamped on the Brehon law even more clearly than
it is upon the actual land-law of India. It is perfectly true
that the form of private ownership in land which grew out of the
appropriation of portions of the tribal domain to individual
households of tribesmen is plainly recognised by the Brehon
lawyers; yet the rights of private owners are limited by the
controlling rights of a brotherhood of kinsmen, and the control
is in some respects even more stringent than that exercised over
separate property by an indian village-community. It is also true
that another form of ownership in land, that which had its origin
in the manorial authority of the lord over the cultivating group,
has also begun to show itself; yet, though the Chief of the Clan
is rapidly climbing to a position answering to the Lordship of a
Manor, he has not fully ascended to it, and the most novel
information contained in the tracts is that which they supply
concerning the process of ascent.
The first instructive fact which strikes us on the threshold
of the Brehon law is, that the same word, 'Fine,' or Family, is
applied to all the subdivisions of Irish society. It is used for
the Tribe in its largest extension as pretending to some degree
of political independence, and for all intermediate bodies down
to the Family as we understand it, and even for portions of the
Family (Sullivan, 'Introduction, clxii). It seems certain that
each of the various groups into which ancient Celtic society was
divided conceived itself as descended from some one common
ancestor, from whom the name, or one of the names, of the entire
body of kinsmen was derived. Although this assumption was never
in ancient Ireland so palpable a fiction as the affiliation of
Greek races or communities on an heroic eponymous progenitor, it
was probably at most true of the Chief and his house so far as
regarded the Irish Tribe taken as a political unit. But it is
probable that it was occasionally, and even often true of the
smaller group, the Sept, sub-Tribe, or Joint Family, which
appears to me to be the legal unit of the Brehon tracts. The
traditions regarding the eponymous ancestor of this group were
distinct and apparently trustworthy, and its members were of kin
to one another in virtue of their common descent from the
ancestor who gave his name to all. The chief for the time being
was, as the Anglo-Irish judges called him in the famous 'Case of
Gavelkind,' the caput cognationis.
Not only was the Tribe or Sept named after this eponymous
ancestor, but the territory which it occupied also derived from
him the name which was in commonest use. I make this remark
chiefly because a false inference has been drawn from an
assertion of learned men concerning the connection between names
of families and names of places, which properly understood is
perfectly sound. It has been laid down that, whenever a family
and place have the same name, it is the place which almost
certainly gave its name to the family. This is no doubt true of
feudalised countries, but it is not true of countries as yet
unaffected by feudalism. It is likely that such names as
'O'Brien's Country' and 'Macleod's Country' are as old as any
appropriation of land by man; and this is worth remembering when
we are tempted to gauge the intelligence of an early writer by
the absurdity of his etymologies. 'Hibernia' from an eponymous
discoverer, 'Hyber,' sounds ridiculous enough; but the chronicler
who gives it may have been near enough the age of tribal society
to think that the connection between the place and the name was
the most natural and probable he could suggest. Even the most
fanciful etymologies of the Greeks, such as Hellespont, from
Helle, may have been 'survivals' from a primitive tribal system
of naming places. In the relation between names and places, as in
much more important matters, feudalism has singularly added to
the importance of land.
Let me now state the impression which, partly from the
examination of the translated texts, legal and non-legal, and
partly by the aid of Dr. Sullivan's Introduction, I have formed
of the agrarian organisation of an Irish Tribe. It has been long
settled, in all probability, upon the tribal territory. It is of
sufficient size and importance to constitute a political unit,
and possibly at its apex is one of the numerous chieftains whom
the Irish records call Kings. The primary assumption is that the
whole of the tribal territory belongs to the whole of the tribe,
but in fact large portions of it have been permanently
appropriated to minor bodies of tribesmen. A part is allotted in
a special way to the Chief as appurtenant to his office, and
depends from Chief to Chief according to a special rule of
succession. Other portions are occupied by fragments of the
tribe, some of which are under minor chiefs or 'flaiths,' while
others, though not strictly ruled by a chief, have somebody of a
noble class to act as their representative. All the
unappropriated tribe-lands are in a more especial way the
property of the tribe as a whole, and no portion can
theoretically be subjected to more than a temporary occupation.
Such occupations are, however, frequent, and among the holders of
tribe-land, on these terms, are groups of men calling themselves
tribesmen, but being in reality associations formed by contract,
chiefly for the purpose of pasturing cattle. Much of the common
tribe-land is not occupied at all, but constitutes, to use the
English expression, the 'waste' of the tribe. Still this waste is
constantly brought under tillage or permanent pasture by
settlements of tribesmen, and upon it cultivators of servile
status are permitted to squat, particularly towards the border.
It is the part of the territory over which the authority of the
Chief tends steadily to increase, and here it is that he settles
his 'fuidhir,' or stranger-tenants, a very important class -- the
outlaws and 'broken' men from other tribes who come to him for
protection, and who are only connected with their new tribe by
their dependence on its chief, and through the responsibility
which he incurs for them.
There is probably great uniformity in the composition of the
various groups occupying, permanently or temporary, the tribal
territory. Each seems to be more or less a miniature of the large
tribe which includes them all. Each probably contains freemen and
slaves, or at all events men varying materially in personal
status, yet each calls itself in some sense a family. Each very
possibly has its appropriated land and its waste, and conducts
tillage and grazing on the same principles. Each is either under
a Chief who really represents the common ancestor of all the free
kinsmen, or under somebody who has undertaken the
responsibilities devolving according to primitive social idea
upon the natural head of the kindred. In enquiries of the class
upon which we are engaged the important fact which I stated here
three years ago should always be borne in mind. When the first
English emigrants settled in New England they distributed
themselves in village communities; so difficult is it to strike
out new paths of social life and new routes of social habit. It
is all but certain that, in such a society as that of which we
are speaking, one single model of social organisation and social
practice would prevail, and none but slight or insensible
departures from it would be practicable or conceivable.
But still the society thus formed is not altogether
stationary. The temporary occupation of the common tribe-land
tends to become permanent, either through the tacit sufferance or
the active consent of the tribesmen. Particular families manage
to elude the theoretically periodical re-division of the common
patrimony of the group; others obtain allotments with its consent
as the reward of service or the appanage of office; and there is
a constant transfer of lands to the Church, and an intimate
intermixture of tribal rights with ecclesiastical rights. The
establishment of Property in Severalty is doubtless retarded both
by the abundance of land and by the very law under which, to
repeat the metaphor of the Indian poetess, the tribal society has
crystallised, since each family which has appropriated a portion
of tribe-land tends always to expand into an extensive assemblage
of tribesmen having equal rights. But still there is a
co-operation of causes always tending to result in Several
Property, and the Brehon law shows that by the time it was put
into shape they had largely taken effect. As might be expected,
the severance of land from the common territory appears to have
been most complete in the case of Chiefs, many of whom have large
private estates held under ordinary tenure in addition to the
demesne specially attached to their signory.
Such is the picture of Irish tribal organisation in relation
to the land which I have been able to present to my own mind. All
such descriptions must be received with reserve: among other
reasons, because even the evidence obtainable from the law-tracts
is still incomplete. But if the account is in any degree correct,
all who have attended to this class of subjects will observe at
once that the elements of what we are accustomed to consider the
specially Germanic land system are present in the territorial
arrangements of the Irish tribe. Doubtless there are material
distinctions. Kinship as yet, rather than landed right, knits the
members of the Irish groups together. The Chief is as yet a very
different personage from the Lord of the Manor. And there are no
signs as yet even of the beginnings of great towns and cities.
Still the assertion, which is the text of Dr Sullivan's treatise,
may be hazarded without rashness, that everything in the Germanic
has at least its embryo in the Celtic land system. The study of
the Brehon law leads to the same conclusion pointed at by so many
branches of modern research. It conveys a stronger impression
than ever of a wide separation between the Aryan race and races
of other stocks, but it suggests that many, perhaps most, of the
differences in kind alleged to exist between Aryan sub-races are
really differences merely in degree of development. It is to be
hoped that contemporary thought will before long make an effort
to emancipate itself from those habits of levity in adopting
theories of race which it seems to have contracted. Many of these
theories appear to have little merit except the facility which
they give for building on them inferences tremendously out of
proportion to the mental labour which they cost the builder.
It has been very commonly believed that, before the agrarian
measures of James the First, Ireland was one of the countries in
which private property in land was invested with least
sacredness, and in which forms of ownership generally considered
as barbarous most extensively prevailed. Spenser and Davis
certainly suggest this opinion, and several modern writers have
adopted it. The Brehon law-tracts prove, however, that it can
only be received with considerable qualification and
modification, and they show that private property, and especially
private property in land, had long been known in Ireland at the
epoch to which they belong, having come into existence either
through the natural disintegration of collective ownership or
through the severance of particular estates from the general
tribal domain. Nevertheless it cannot, I think, be doubted that
at the period to which the tracts are an index much land was held
throughout Ireland under rules or customs savouring of the
ancient collective enjoyment, and this I understand Dr Sullivan
to allow. (Introduction, p. cxliv)
Part of the evidence of the fact just stated is tolerably
familiar to students of Irish history. At the beginning of the
seventeenth century the Anglo-Irish Judges declared the English
Common Law to be in force throughout Ireland, and from the date
of this decision all land in the country descended to the eldest
son of the last owner, unless its devolution was otherwise
determined by settlement or will. In Sir John Davis's report of
the case and of the arguments before the Court, it is recited
that hitherto all land in Ireland had descended either under the
rule of Tanistry or under the rules of Gavelkind. The system of
inheritance here called Gavelkind is thus described: When a
landowning member of an Irish Sept died, its chief made a
re-distribution of all the lands of the Sept. He did not divide
the estate of the dead man among his children, but used it to
increase the allotments of the various households of which the
Sept was made up. The Judges treated both Tanistry and Gavelkind
as systems of succession after death, of a peculiarly barbarous
and mischievous kind; and, as systems of succession, I shall
consider them hereafter. But all systems of succession after
death bear a close relation to ancient modes of enjoyment during
life; for instance, in the Joint Undivided Family of the Hindoos,
the stirpes, or stocks, which are only known to European law as
branches of inheritors, are actual divisions of the family, and
live together in distinct parts of the common dwelling.
('Calcutta Review' July 1874, p. 208) The so-called Irish
Gavelkind belongs to a class of institutions very common in the
infancy of law; it is a contrivance for securing comparative
equality among the joint proprietors of a common fund. The
redistribution here takes place at the death of a head of a
household; but if equality were secured by what is practically
the same process -- viz., re-division after a fixed period of
years -- an institution would be produced which has not quite
died out of Europe at the present moment, and of which there are
traditions in all old countries. At the same time i have no doubt
that, when the Irish Gavelkind was declared illegal, it was very
far from being the only system of succession known to Ireland
except Tanistry, and i th ink it probable that many different
modes of enjoyment and inheritance were abolished by the decision
giving the land to the eldest son.
It was the actual observation of peculiar agricultural
usages, special methods of cultivation, and abnormal rules of
tenure, which mainly enabled G. L. Von Maurer to restore the
German Mark to knowledge; and it was by using Von Maurer's
results as his key that Nasse was able to decipher the scattered
references to the 'Agricultural Community of the Middle Ages' in
a variety of English documents. I venture to think that this
class of observation has not been carried far enough in Ireland
to yield material for a confident opinion, but there certainly
seem to be vestiges of ancient collective enjoyment in the
extensive prevalence of 'rundale' holdings in parts of the
country. Under this system a definite area of land is occupied by
a group of families. In the form now most common, the arable
lands are held in severalty, while pasture and bog are in common.
But as lately as fifty years since, cases were frequent in which
the arable land was divided into farms which shifted among the
tenant-families periodically, and sometimes annually. Even when
no such division was made, a well-known relic of the Mark-system,
as it showed itself in Germany and England, was occasionally
found : the arable portion of the estates was composed of three
different qualities of soil, and each tenant had a lot or lots in
the land of each quality, without reference to position. What was
virtually the same system of tenure prevailed quite recently in
the Scottish Highlands. I have ascertained that the families
which formed the village-communities only just extinct in the
Western Highlands had the lands of the village re-distributed
among them by lot at fixed intervals of time; and I gather from
Mr Skene's valuable note on 'Tribe Communities in Scotland'
(appended to the second volume of his edition of Fordun's
Chronicle), that he believes this system of re-division to have
been once universal, or at least widely extended, among the
Scottish Celts.
It is to be observed that (so far as I am able to learn) the
Irish holdings in 'rundale' are not forms of property, but modes
of occupation. There is always some person above who is legally
owner of all the land held by the group of families, and who,
theoretically, could change the method of holding, although,
practically, popular feeling would put the greatest difficulties
in his way. We must bear in mind, however, that archaic kinds of
tenancy are constantly evidence of ancient forms of
proprietorship. This is so in countries in which superior
ownership has arisen through the natural course of events through
purchase from small allodial proprietors, through colonisation of
village waste-lands become in time the lord's waste, or (in an
earlier state of society) through the sinking of whole
communities of peasants into villeinage, and through a consequent
transformation of the legal theory of their rights. But all this
process of change would be gravely misconstrued if it were
supposed that, because a Chief or Lord had come to be recognised
as legal owner of the whole tribal domain, or of great portions
of it, he therefore altered the accustomed methods of occupation
and cultivation, or (as some would even seem to think) he began
at once to regard the occupying peasantry as modern lessees or
modern tenants at will. No doubt the ancient type of ownership
long served as the model for tenancy; and the common holdings,
dying out as property, survived as occupation. And, if this were
the case in other countries, much more would it be so in Ireland,
where property has changed hands so often and so violently; where
during whole centuries, the owners of land neither regarded, nor
were in a position to regard, the occupiers save as payers of
rent and dues; and where the conception of a landlord acting on
his legal ownership with a view to improvement and increase of
production is altogether modern.
The chief Brehon law-tract, which sets forth the mutual
rights of the collective tribe and of individual tribesmen or
households of tribesmen in respect of tribal property, is called
the Corus Bescna, and is printed in the Third Volume of the
official edition. It presents great difficulties. I quite agree
with the Editors that the commentary and glosses constantly
contradict and obscure the text, either because the commentators
did not understand it or because they belonged to a later period
and a different stage of legal relations. But the most serious
doubt which occurs to the student of the text arises from the
strong and palpable bias of the compiler towards the interests of
the Church; indeed, part of the tract is avowedly devoted to the
law of Church property and of the organisation of religious
houses. When this writer affirms that, under certain
circumstances, a tribesman may grant or contract away tribal
land, his ecclesiastical leaning constantly suggests a doubt as
to his legal doctrine. Does he mean to lay down that the land may
be parted with generally and in favour of anybody, or only that
it may be alienated in favour of the Church? This difficulty of
construction has an interest of its own. I am myself persuaded
that the influence of the Christian Church on law has been very
generally sought for in a wrong quarter, and that historians of
law have too much overlooked its share in diffusing the
conceptions of free contract, individual property, and
testamentary succession, through the regions beyond the Roman
Empire which were peopled by communities held together by the
primitive tie of consanguinity. It is generally agreed among
scholars that Churchmen introduced these races to wills and
bequests; the Brehon tracts suggest to me at least that, along
with the sacredness of bequests, they insisted upon the
sacredness of contracts; and it is well known that, in the
Germanic countries, their ecclesiastical societies were among the
earliest and largest grantees of public or 'folk' land (Stubbs,
'Constitutional History ', vol. i. p. 154). The Will, the
Contract, and the Separate Ownership were in fact indispensable
to the Church as the donee of pious gifts; and they were also
essential and characteristic elements in the civilisation amid
which the Church had been reared to maturity. It is possible that
the compiler of the Corus Bescna may have been an ecclesiastic,
as he certainly would have been in any society except the Irish;
but, if he were a lawyer, he writes aS a lawyer would state the
case on behalf of a favourite and important client. Let me add
that all the Brehon writers seem to me to have a bias towards
private or several, as distinguished from collective, property.
No doubt it was then, as always, the great source of legal
business, and it may have seemed to them, and it possibly was,
the index to such advance in civilisation as their country was
capable of making.
My own strong opinion is that the 'Fine,' whose rights and
powers are the principal theme of the Corus Bescna, and whose
name the translators render 'Tribe,' is neither the Tribe in its
largest extension, nor, on the other hand, the modern Family or
group of descendants from a living ancestor, but the Sept. It is
a body of kinsmen whose progenitor is no longer living, but whose
descent from him is a reality, and neither a myth nor a fiction.
It is the Joint Family of the Hindoos, but with the
characteristics of that group considerably modified through
settlement on the land. This peculiar assemblage or corporation
of blood-relatives, which has been referred to by me several
times before, is formed by the continuance of the family union
through several, and it may be through an indefinite number of
generations. The rule throughout most of the civilised world is
that, for all purposes of law, families are broken up into
individuals or dissolved into a number of new families by the
death of their head. But this is not necessary the case. The
group made up of those whom we vaguely call our relatives -- of
our brothers, nephews, great-uncles, uncles, and cousins, no less
than those related to us in the ascending and descending lines --
might very well, after any number of deaths, remain knitted
together not only by blood and affection, but by mutual rights
and duties prescribed or sanctioned by the law. An association of
this sort is well known to the law of India as the Joint
Undivided Family, or, to give the technical description, the
Family, 'joint in food, worship, and estate.' If a Hindoo has
become the root of a family it is not necessarily separated by
his death; his children continue united for legal purposes as a
corporate brotherhood, and some definite act of one or more of
the brethren is required to effect a dissolution of the plexus of
mutual rights and a partition of the family property. The family
thus formed by the continuance of several generations in union is
identical in outline with a group very familiar to the students
of the older Roman law -- the Agnatic Kindred. The Agnates were
that assemblage of persons who would have been under the
patriarchal authority of some common ancestor, if he had lived
long enough to exercise it. The Joint Family of the Hindoos is
that assemblage of persons who would have joined in the
sacrifices at the funeral of some common ancestor, if he had died
in their lifetime. In the last case the sacerdotal point of view
merely takes the place of the legal or civil.
So far as we are able, amid the disadvantages under which we
are placed by the obscurity of our authorities, let us examine
the legal qualities which the ancient Irish law attributes to
this brotherhood of kinsmen as it was found in Ireland. First of
all, the 'Tribe' of the Brehon tracts is a corporate, organic,
self-sustaining unit. 'The Tribe sustains itself.' ('Ancient Laws
of Ireland,' ii. 283.) Its continuity has begun to depend on the
land which it occupies -- 'land,' says one of the still
unpublished tracts, 'is perpetual man' -- but it is not a purely
land-owning body; it has 'live chattels and dead chattels,'
distinguished from those of individual tribesmen. ('Ancient Laws
of Ireland,' ii. 289.) Nor is it a purely cultivating body; it
may follow a professional calling. (Ibid., iii. 49-51.) A portion
of the tribal domain, probably the arable and choice pasture
lands, has been allotted to separate households of tribesmen, but
they hold their allotments subject to the controlling rights of
the entire brotherhood, and the primary or fundamental rule is
that they are to keep their shares of tribe-land intact. 'Every
tribesman is able to keep his tribe-land; he is not to sell it or
alienate or conceal it, or give it to pay for crimes or
contracts.' ('Ancient Laws of Ireland,' ii. 283.) 'No person
should leave a rent upon his land or upon his tribe which he did
not find upon it.' (Ibid., iii. 52, 53.) 'Everyone is wealthy who
keeps his tribe-land perfect as he got it, who does not leave
greater debt upon it than he found on it.' (Ibid., iii. 55.)
Under certain circumstances the tribesman may alienate, by
grant, contract, or bequest, a certain quantity of the tribe-land
allotted to him; but what are the circumstances, and what the
quantity, are points on which we cannot venture to make any
precise statement, so obscure and contradictory are the rules set
forth. But the grantee primarily contemplated is certainly the
Church, though it seems clear that there is a general power of
alienation, either with the consent of the entire tribal
brotherhood or under pressure of strong necessity. It further
appears to be beyond question that the tribesman has considerably
greater power of disposition over property which he has acquired
than over property which has devolved on him as a member of a
tribe, and that he has more power over acquisitions made by his
own unaided industry than over acquisitions made through profits
arising from the cultivation of tribal land. 'No person should
grant land except such as he has purchased himself, unless by the
common consent of the tribe. ('Ancient Laws of Ireland,' iii. 52,
53.) 'He who has not sold or bought (i.e., he who keeps his
tribeland as he obtained it) is allowed to make grants, each
according to his dignity (i.e., as the commentator explains, to
the extent of one-third or one-half of his tribe-land).' 'He who
neither sells nor purchases may give as far as the third of his
tribe-share in case of little necessity and one-half in case of
great necessity' ('Ancient Laws of Ireland,'iii. 47.) 'If it be
land that acquires it, it is one-half;... if he be a professional
man, it is two-thirds of his contracts ' (iii. 49).
The distinction between acquired property and property
inherited or received from kinsmen, and the enlarged power of
parting with the first, are found in many bodies of ancient law
-- in our own early law among others. The rule that alienations,
otherwise unlawful, may be made under pressure of necessity, is
found in many parts of Hindoo law. The rule requiring the consent
of the collective brotherhood to alienations, with many minor
rules of this part of Brehon law, constantly forms part of the
customs of Indian and Russian village-communities; and the duty
of following common practices of tillage, which is the bequest
from these communities which lasted longest in the Germanic
countries, is classed by the Corus Bescna, along with Marriage,
as one of the fundamental institutions of the irish people.
('Ancient Laws of Ireland,' iii. 17.) But much the most striking
and unexpected analogies in the Brehon law on the subject of
Tribesmen and the Tribe are those which it has with the Hindoo
law of Joint Undivided Families. Under the Brahminical Indian
law, whenever a member of a joint family has acquired property
through special scientific knowledge or the practice of a liberal
art, he does not bring it into the common fund, unless his
accomplishments were obtained through a training given to him by
his family or at their expense. The whole law on the subject was
much considered in a strange case which arose before the High
Court of Madras ('Madras High Court Reports,' ii. 56), where a
joint family claimed the gains of a dancing-girl. The decision of
the Court is thus summarised by the Reporter: 'The ordinary gains
of science are divisible (i.e., they are brought into hotchpot
upon partition of an undivided estate), when such science has
been imparted at the family expense and acquired while receiving
a family maintenance. It is otherwise when the science has been
imparted at the expense of persons not members of the learner's
family.' The very counterparts of the Indian rule and of the
Indian exception are found in the ancient Irish law. 'If (the
tribesman) be a professional man-that is, if the property be
acquired by judicature or poetry, or any profession whatsoever --
he is capable of giving two-thirds of it to the Church... but, if
it was the lawful profession of his tribe, he shall not give of
the emolument of his profession but just as he could give of the
land of his tribe.' (Corus Bescna, 'Ancient Laws of Ireland,'
iii. 5.) It will be seen from the instances which I have given
that the rules of the Irish Brehon law regulating the power of
individual tribesmen to alienate their separate property answer
to the rules of Indian Brahminical law which regulate the power
of individual members of a joint family to enjoy separate
property. The difference is material. The Hindoo law assumes that
collective enjoyment by the whole brotherhood is the rule, and it
treats the enjoyment of separate property by individual brethren
as an exception -- an exception, I may add, round which an
enormous mass of law has now clustered. On the other hand, the
Brehon law, so far as it can be understood, seems to me
reconcileable with no other assumption than that individual
proprietary rights have grown up and attained some stability
within the circle of the tribe. The exercise of these rights is
at the same time limited by the controlling powers of the
collective brotherhood of tribesmen; and to these last, as to the
Agnatic Kindred at Rome, some ultimate right of succession
appears to be reserved. Hence the Irish legal unit is not
precisely a Joint Family; if the Brehon law is to be trusted, it
has considerably less of the 'natural communism' which
characterises the Indian institution. The 'Fine' of the tracts is
constantly spoken of in connection with landed property, and,
whenever it is so connected, I imagine it to have undergone some
of the changes which are constantly brought about by contact with
the land, and I figure it to myself in that case as a Mark or
Village-Community, in which the ideas proper to the older group
out of which it grew, the Joint Family, have survived in
exceptional strength It in this respect approaches the Russian
rather than the Indian type of village-community.
The 'Judgments of Co-Tenancy' is a Brehon law-tract, still
unpublished at the time at which I write, and presenting, in its
present state, considerable difficulties of interpretation. It
puts, at the outset, the question, -- 'Whence does Co-Tenancy
arise?' The answer given is, 'From several heirs and from their
increasing on the land.' The tract then goes on to explain that
the land is, in the first year, to be tilled by the kinsmen just
as each pleases; that in the second year they are to exchange
lots; that in the third year the boundaries are to be fixed; and
that the whole process of severance is to be consummated in the
tenth year. I trust it is not a presumptuous conjecture that the
order of change here indicated is more trustworthy than the time
fixed for each of its stages. The period of ten years for the
entire transition from collective to separate property seems to
me greatly too short, and hard to reconcile with other Irish
evidence; and I suggest that the Brehon lawyer, attached to the
institution of separate property, like the rest of his class, is
depicting rather an ideal than an actual set of arrangements. The
process, however, which is here described, if it be spread over a
much longer space of time, is really in harmony with all our
knowledge of the rise and progress of cultivating communities.
First a Joint Family, composed of 'several heirs increasing on
the land,' is found to have made a settlement. In the earliest
stage the various households reclaim the land without set rule.
Next comes the system of exchanging lots. Finally, the portions
of land are enjoyed in severalty.
The references to the ancient collective ownership and
ancient collective enjoyment in the non-legal Irish literature
appear to be very rare. But my friend Mr Whitley Stokes has
supplied me with two passages in point. The 'Liber Hymnorum,'
attributed to the eleventh century, contains (folio 5A) the
following statement: 'Numerous were the human beings in Ireland
at that time (i.e. the time of the sons of Aed Slane, A.D.
658-694), and such was their number that they used to get only
thrice nine ridges for each man in Ireland, to wit, nine of bog,
and nine of smooth (arable), and nine of wood.' Another Irish
manuscript, believed to date from the twelfth century, the 'Lebor
na Huidre,' Says that 'there was not ditch, nor fence, nor
stone-wall round land, till came the period of the sons of Aed
Slane, but (only) smooth fields. Because of the abundance of the
households in their period, therefore it is that they introduced
boundaries in Ireland. These curious statements can, of course,
only be regarded as authority for the existence, at the time when
they were penned, of a belief that a change from a system of
collective to a system of restricted enjoyment had occurred at
some period or other in Ireland, and of a tradition respecting
the date of the change. But it is instructive to find both of
them attributing it to the growth of population, and an especial
interest attaches to the account given in the 'Liber Hymnorum' of
the newer distribution of land which was thought to have taken
the place of something older. The periodical allotment to each
household of a definite portion of bog land, wood land, and
arable land wears a strong resemblance to the apportionment of
pasture and wood and arable land which still goes on in our day
under the communal rules of the Swiss Allmenden (see Laveleye,
'P. et s. F. P.,' pp. 268 et seq.), and which is an undoubted
legacy from the ancient constitution of certain Swiss Cantons as
Teutonic Hundreds.
Property in Land, wherever it has grown out of the gradual
dissolution of the ancient cultivating communities, has many
characteristics which distinguish it from the form of landed
property with which Englishmen and men of English race are best
acquainted. The area within which this last form of property is
the sole or dominant kind of ownership is now much larger than it
was, through its diffusion over all North America, except Mexico,
and over all colonies settled for the first time by Englishmen,
but our nearly exclusive familiarity with it has led, I think, to
our very commonly over-estimating the extent to which it prevails
over the world, and even over Western Europe. Its parentage may
be traced, not to the decaying authority of the Tribe over the
severalties of the tribesmen, but to the ever-increasing
authority of the Chief, first over his own domain and 'booked'
land, and secondarily over the tribe-lands. The early growth of
the power of the Chief is thus of the utmost interest in the
history of landed property, and I propose to discuss it at some
length in the succeeding Lectures. Meantime, let me say something
on the transmutations which Patriarchal Power is observed, as a
fact, to undergo in the assemblies of men held together by
kinship which are still found making a part of Aryan communities.
The Joint Undivided Family, wherever its beginning is seen in
such communities, springs universally out of the Patriarchal
Family, a group of natural or adoptive descendants held together
by subjection to the eldest living ascendant, father,
grandfather, or great-grandfather. Whatever be the formal
prescriptions of the law, the head of such a group is always in
practice despotic, and he is the object of a respect, if not
always of an affection, which is probably seated deeper than any
positive institution. But in the more extensive assemblages of
kinsmen which constitute the Joint Family the eldest male of the
eldest line is never the parent of all the members, and not
necessarily the first in age among them. To many of them he is
merely a distant relative, and he may possibly be an infant. The
sense of patriarchal right does not die out in such groups. Each
father or grandfather has more power than anybody else over his
wife, children, and descendants; and there is always what may be
called a belief that the blood of the collective brotherhood runs
more truly and purely in some one line than in any other. Among
the Hindoos, the eldest male of this line, if of full mental
capacity, is gene rally placed at the head of the concerns of the
joint family; but where the institution survives in any
completeness, he is not a Paterfamilias, nor is he owner of the
family property, but merely manager of its affairs and
administrator of its possessions. If he is not deemed fit for his
duties, a 'worthier' kinsman is substituted for him by election,
and, in fact, the longer the joint family holds together, the
more election gains ground at the expense of birth. The head or
manager of the Sclavonic House-Communities (which, however, are
much more artificial than the Hindoo Joint Families) is
undisguisedly an elective representative, and in some of our
examples a council of kinsmen belonging to the eldest line of
descent takes the place of an individual administrator. The whole
process I will describe as the gradual transmutation of the
Patriarch into the Chief. The general rule is that the Chief is
elected, with a strong preference for the eldest line. Sometimes
he is assisted by a definite council of near kinsmen, and
sometimes this council takes his place. On the whole, where the
body of kinsmen formed on the type of the Joint Family is a
purely civil institution, the tendency is towards greater
disregard of the claims of blood. But in those states of society
in which the brotherhood is not merely a civil confraternity, but
a political, militant, self-sustaining group, we can perceive
from actually extant examples that a separate set of causes come
into operation, and that the Chief, as military leader, sometimes
more than regains the privileges which he lost through the decay
of the tradition which connected him with the common root of all
the kindred. True patriarchal authority, however, revives
whenever the process of expansion into a group is interrupted and
whenever one of the brotherhood plants himself at a distance from
the rest. A Hindoo who severs himself from a Joint Family, which
the law as administered by the English tribunals gives him great
facilities for doing, acquires much greater power over his
family, in our sense of the word, than he had as a member of the
larger brotherhood. Similarly, in the developed Joint Family or
Village-Community, as the little society becomes more populous,
as the village spreads, as the practice of living in separate
dwellings extends, as the land rather than the common lineage
gets to be regarded as the cement of the brotherhood, each man in
his own house practically obtains stringent patriarchal authority
over his wife, children, and servants. But then, on the other
hand, the separated member of the joint family, or the head of
the village household, will himself become the root of a new
joint brotherhood, unless his children voluntarily dissolve the
family union after his death. Thus all the branches of human
society may or may not have been developed from joint families
which arose out of an original patriarchal cell; but, wherever
the Joint Family is an institution of an Aryan race, we see it
springing from such a cell, and, when it dissolves, we see it
dissolving into a number of such cells.
Nothing seems to me to have been more clearly shown by recent
researches than the necessity of keeping apart the Tribe and the
Tribal Chief as distinct sources of positive institutions. The
lines of descent are constantly entwined, but each of them is
found to run up in the end to an independent origin. If I were to
apply this assertion to political history, I should be only
repeating much of what has been said by Mr Freeman in his
excellent work on 'Comparative Politics.' Confining myself to the
history of private institutions, let me observe that the
distinction which I have drawn should be carefully borne in mind
by those who desire to penetrate to the beginnings of Property in
Land. The subject has been greatly obscured by the practice, now
brought home to the early writers on feudal law, of
systematically passing over or misconstruing all forms of
proprietary enjoyment which they could not explain on their own
principles; and hitherto the truth has only been directly seen
through some of the rules of tenure. It may now, however, be laid
down without rashness that Property in Land, as known to
communities of the Aryan race, has had a twofold origin. It has
arisen partly from the disentanglement of the individual rights
of the kindred or tribesmen from the collective rights of the
Family or Tribe, and partly from the growth and transmutation of
the sovereignty of the Tribal Chief. The phenomena attributable
to the double process seem to me easily distinguishable from one
another. Both the sovereignty of the Chief and the ownership of
land by the Family or Tribe were in most of Western Europe passed
through the crucible of feudalism; but the first reappeared in
some well-marked characteristics of military or knightly tenures,
and the last in the principal rules of non-noble holdings, and
among them of Socage, the distinctive tenure of the free farmer.
The status of the Chief has thus left us one bequest in the rule
of Primogeniture, which, however, has long lost its most ancient
form; another in the right to receive certain dues and to enforce
certain monopolies; and a third in a specially absolute form of
property which was once exclusively enjoyed by the Chief, and
after him by the Lord, in the portion of the tribal territory
which formed his own domain. On the other hand, several systems
of succession after death, and among them the equal division of
the land between the children, have sprung out of tribal
ownership in various stages of decay; and it has left another set
of traces (not quite so widely extended), in a number of minute
customary rules which govern tillage and occasionally regulate
the distribution of the produce.
The fate of this double set of institutions in England and in
France appears to me most instructive. I have frequently dwelt in
this place on the erroneousness of the vulgar opinion which dates
the extreme subdivision of the soil of France from the first
French Revolution, and from the sale of the Church lands and of
the estates of the emigrant nobility. A writer -- I was going to
say as commonly read as Arthur Young, but certainly as often
mentioned as if he were commonly read -- notices this
morcellement, on the very eve of the French Revolution, and
immediately after it, as the great feature which distinguished
France from England. 'From what we see in England,' he says,
('Travels in 1787, '88, and, '89' p. 407) ' we cannot form an
idea of the abundance in France of small properties, that is,
little farms belonging to those who cultivate them.' He estimates
that more than a third of the kingdom was occupied by them -- a
very large proportion, when the extent of Church land in France
is taken into account; but recent French investigations have
shown reasons for thinking that the true proportion was still
larger, and that it was rather growing than diminishing, through
that extravagance of the nobles which Court life fostered, and
which compelled them to sell their domains to peasants in small
parcels. Young clearly saw that this subdivision of the soil was
the result of some legal rule; and strongly dissenting from the
Revolutionary leaders who wished to carry it farther, he declared
that 'a law ought to be passed to render all division below a
certain number of arpents illegal.'
It seems to have very generally escaped notice that the law
of equal or nearly equal division after death was the general law
of France. The rule of primogeniture was of exceptional
application, and was for the most part confined to lands held by
knightly tenure; indeed, in the South of France, where the custom
of equal division was strengthened by the identical rule of the
Roman jurisprudence, the privileges of the eldest son were only
secured by calling in the exceptional rules of which the Roman
Law gives the benefit to milites (or soldiers on service) when
making their wills or regulating their successions, and by laying
down that every chevalier, and every noble of higher degree, was
a miles within the meaning of the Roman juridical writers. The
two systems of succession and the two forms of property lay side
by side, and there were men alive quite recently who could
remember the bitter animosities caused by their co-existence and
antagonism. A very great part of the land held by laymen belonged
to the peasantry, and descended according to the rule of equal
division, but eldest son after eldest son succeeded to the
signory. Yet it was not the rule of primogeniture followed in
noble descents which was the true grievance; at most it became a
grievance under the influence of the peculiar vein of sentiment
introduced by Rousseau. The legacy from tribal sovereignty to
signorial privilege, which was really resented, was that which I
placed second in order. The right to receive feudal dues and to
enforce petty monopolies, now almost extinguished in England by
the measures to which the Copyhold Commission has given effect,
had ceased long before the end of the last century to be of any
considerable importance to the class which was invested with it;
but M. de Tocqueville has explained, in his 'Ancien Régime' (i.
18), that it made up almost the entire means of living which the
majority of the French nobility possessed. A certain number of
noblemen, besides their feudal rights, had their terres, or
domain, belonging to them in absolute property, and sometimes of
enormous extent; and the wealthiest members of this limited
class, the grands, who so frequently appear in French Court
history, but who, away from the Court, were much the most
respected and beloved of their order, formed the counterpart,
from the legal point of view, of the English landed proprietary.
The rest of the nobles lived mainly, not on rent, but on their
feudal dues, and eked out a meagre subsistence by serving the
King in arms. The sense of property in the soil was thus not in
the lord but in the peasantry; and the peasantry viewed the
exercise of signorial rights with a feeling closely akin to that
which is inspired by a highly oppressive tax. The condition of
sentiment produced by it is even now a political force of some
moment in France; and a similar, though a far weaker, repulsion
is known to have been caused in this country by the taking of
tithes in kind. It is a significant fact that, where the
ownership is acknowledged to reside in the superior holder, the
exaction of even an extreme rent from the tenants below has very
rarely been regarded with the same bitterness of resentment.
The change, therefore, which took place in France at the
first Revolution was this: the land-law of the people superseded
the land-law of the nobles, In England the converse process has
been gone through, and what has occurred is obviously in harmony
with much else in English history. The system of the nobles has
become in all essential particulars the system of the people. The
rule of primogeniture, which once applied only to knightly
holdings, came to apply to the great bulk of English tenures,
except the Gavelkind of Kent and some others of merely local
importance. This part of the change took place at a remote epoch,
and its circumstances are involved in much obscurity; and we know
little more of it with certainty than that it was rapidly
proceeding between the time at which Glanville and the time at
which Bracton wrote. Glanville, probably not earlier than the
thirty-third year of Henry the Second's reign, expresses himself
as if the general rule of law caused lands held by free
cultivators in socage to be divided equally between all the male
children at the death of the last owner; Bracton, probably not
later than the fifty-second year of Henry the Third, writes as if
the rule of primogeniture applied universally to military tenures
and generally to socage tenures. But another branch of the
process was postponed almost to our own day. Possibly not many
Englishmen have recognised with as much clearness as a recent
French writer (Doniol, 'La Revolution Française et la Féodalité')
that the transmutation of customary and copyhold into freehold
property, which has been proceeding for about forty years under
the conduct of the Copyhold and Enclosure Commissioners, is the
peaceful and insensible removal of a grievance which did more
than any other to bring about the first French Revolution and to
prevent the re-establishment of the ancient political order. But
long before there was a Copyhold Commission, the great mass of
English landed property had assumed certain characteristics which
strongly distinguished it from the peasant property of the
Continent as it existed before it was affected by the French
Codes, and as it is still found in some countries. This last form
of proprietorship was very generally fettered by the duty of
cultivation in some particular way, and, as a rule, could not be
dealt with so as to bar the rights reserved to the children and
widow of the owner by the law of succession. The traces of a
similar species of ownership, probably once widely diffused, may
still be here and there discerned through the customs of
particular English manors. I repeat the opinion which I expressed
three years ago, that our modern English conception of absolute
property in land is really descended from the special
proprietorship enjoyed by the Lord, and more anciently by the
tribal Chief, in his own Domain. It would be out of place to
enter here on a discussion of the changes which seem to me
desirable in order to make the soil of England as freely
exchangeable as the theory now generally accepted demands; but to
the principle of several and absolute property in land I hold
this country to be committed. I believe I state the inference
suggested by all known legal history when I say that there can be
no material advance in civilisation unless landed property is
held by groups at least as small as Families; and I again remind
you that we are indebted to the peculiarly absolute English form
of ownership for such an achievement as the cultivation of the
soil of North America.
Before describing to you the new light which the Ancient Laws
of Ireland throw on the primitive condition of the institutions
of which I have been speaking, let me give you one word of
caution as to the statements of modern Irish writers respecting
the original relations of the Irish Tribe and of the Irish Tribal
Chief. Unhappily the subject has been discussed in the spirit of
the later agrarian history of Ireland. On the one hand, some
disputants have thought to serve a patriotic purpose by
contending that the land of each Tribe belonged absolutely to
itself and was its common property, and that the Chief was a mere
administrative officer, rewarded for his services in making a
fair distribution of the territory among the tribesmen by a
rather larger share of its area than the rest, which was allotted
to him as his domain. Contrariwise, some writers, not perhaps
actuated by much kindliness to the Irish people, have at least
suggested that they were always cruelly oppressed by their
superiors, and probably by their natural chiefs more than any
others. These authors point to the strong evidence of oppression
by the Chiefs which the books of the English observers of Ireland
contain. Edmund Spenser and Sir John Davis cannot have merely
intended to calumniate the Irish native aristocracy when they
emphatica1ly declared that the 'chiefs do most shamefully
rackrent their tenants,' and spoke with vehement indignation of
the exactions from which the tribesmen suffered, the 'coshering,'
and the 'coin and livery,' which occur over and over again in
their pages. A third school, of a very different order from
these, has representatives among the most learned Irishmen of our
day. They resent the assertion that the land belonged to the
tribe in common as practically imputing to the ancient Irish that
utter barbarism to which private property is unknown. They say
that traces of ownership jealously guarded are found in all parts
of the Brehon laws, and they are on the whole apt to speak of the
vassalage to the Chief which these laws attribute to the
tribesmen as if it implied something like modern tenancy in the
latter and modern ownership in the former. But they say that the
relation of landlord and tenant was regulated by careful and
kindly provisions, and they ascribe the degradation of the
system, like the other evils of Ireland, to English cupidity and
ignorance. The Norman nobles who first settled in Ireland are
well known to have become in time Chieftains of Irish Tribes; and
it is suggested that they were the first to forget their duties
to their tenants and to think of nothing but their privileges.
Nor is there anything incredible in this last assumption. An
English settler in India who buys land there is often reputed a
harder landlord than the native zemindars, his neighbours, not
because he intends to be harsher (indeed in some things he is
usually far more considerate and bountiful), but because he is
accustomed to a stricter system and cannot accommodate himself to
the loose and irregular play of relations between native
landowner and native tenant.
I cannot wholly concur in any one of these theories
concerning Chief and Tribe. Each seems to me to contain a portion
of truth, but not the whole. Let me first say that the whole
land-system shadowed forth in the Brehon laws does seem to me to
have for its basis the primary ownership of the tribe-land by the
Tribe. It is also true that the Chief appears to exercise certain
administrative duties in respect of this land, and that he has a
specific portion of the tribe-land allotted to him, in the
vicinity of his residence or stronghold, for the maintenance of
his household and relatives. But this is not all. As we see the
system through the law, it is not stationary, but shifting,
developing, disintegrating, re-combining. Even according to the
texts apparently oldest, much of the tribal territory appears to
have been permanently alienated to sub-tribes, families, or
dependent chiefs; and the glosses and commentaries show that,
before they were written, this process had gone very far indeed.
Whatever, again, may have been the original dignity and authority
of the Chief, they are plainly growing, not merely through the
introduction of alien principles and ideas, but from natural
causes, more or less operative all over Europe. The general
character of these causes is very much the same as in the
Germanic countries. The power of the Chief grows first through
the process which is called elsewhere 'commendation,' the process
by which the free tribesman becomes 'his man,' and remains in a
state of dependence having various degrees. It farther grows from
his increasing authority over the waste-lands of the tribal
territory and from the servile or semi-servile colonies he plants
there; and lastly, it augments from the material strength which
he acquires through the numbers of his immediate retainers and
associates, most of whom stand to him in more or less servile
relations. But the Brehon law tells us much that is novel and
surprising concerning the particular course of these changes and
their nature in detail. It furnishes us with some wholly new
ideas concerning the pas sage of society from inchoate to
complete feudalism, and helps us to complete the account of it
derived from Germanic sources. In this, as it seems to me, the
greatest part of its interest consists.
With the Chieftaincy of the Tribe the early history of modern
Aristocracy and modern Kingship begins. These two great
institutions had, in fact, at first the same history, and the
Western world long continued to bear the marks of their original
identity. The Manor with its Tenemental lands held by the free
tenants of the Lord, and with its Domain which was in immediate
dependence on him, was the type of all the feudal sovereignties
in their complete form, whether the ruler acknowledged a superior
above him or whether he at most admitted one in the Pope, or the
Emperor, or God himself. In every County, or Dukedom, or Kingdom
there were great tenants holding directly of its head and on some
sort of parity with him; and there was a Domain under his more
immediate government and at his immediate disposal. There is no
obscurer and more difficult subject than the origin of the class
whose power was the keystone of all these political and
proprietary constructions, and none on which the scantiest
contributions to our knowledge are more welcome.
There is one view of the original condition of privileged
classes which, though held by learned men, has been a good deal
weakened of late by German research, and seems to me still
farther shaken by portions of the Brehon law. This is the
impression that they always constituted, as they practically do
now, a distinct class or section of the community, each member of
the class standing in a closer relation to the other members than
to the rest of the national or tribal society to which all
belong. It cannot be doubted that the earliest modern
aristocracies have as a fact, when they are first discerned, this
particular aspect. Mr Freeman ('Norman Conquest,' i. 88) says
that the 'difference between eorl and ceorl is a primary fact
from which we start.' Tacitus plainly distinguished the noble
from the non-noble freeman in the Germanic societies which he
observed; and Caesar, as I stated in another Lecture, divides all
the Continental Celtic tribes into the Equites and the Plebs. We
can understand that a spectator looking at a set of tribal
communities from the outside would naturally class together all
men visibly exalted above the rest; but nevertheless this is not
quite the appearance which early Germanic society wears in the
eyes of enquirers who follow the method of Von Maurer and Landau.
Each Chief or Lord appears to them to have been noble less with
reference to other noblemen than with reference to the other free
tribesmen comprised in the same group with himself. Nobility has
many diverse origins; but its chief source seems to have been the
respect of co-villagers or assemblages of kinsmen for the line of
descent in which the purest blood of each little society was
believed to be preserved. Similarly, the Brehon law suggests that
the Irish Chiefs were not the class by themselves which the
corresponding order among the Continental Celts appeared to
Caesar to be, but were necessarily the heads of separate groups
composed of their kindred or of their vassals. 'Every chief,'
says the text which I quoted before, 'rules over his land,
whether it be great or whether it be small.' And while the Irish
law describes the way (as I shall point out) in which a common
freeman can become a chief, it also shows that the position to
which he attains is the presidency of a group of dependants.
Nevertheless the persons thus elevated undoubtedly tend to
become, from various causes, a class by themselves and a special
section of the general community; and it is very probable that
the tendency was at work from the earliest times. It is farther
to be remarked that some aristocracies were really a section of
the community from the very first. This structure of society is
produced where one entire tribal group conquers or imposes its
supremacy upon other tribal groups also remaining entire, or
where an original body of tribesmen, villagers, or citizens,
gradually gathers round itself a miscellaneous assemblage of
protected dependants. There are many known instances of both
processes, and the particular relation of tribal groups which the
former implies was certainly not unknown to the Celtic societies.
Among the Scottish Highlanders some entire septs or clans are
stated to have been enslaved to others; and on the very threshold
of Irish history we meet with a distinction between free and
rent-paying tribes which may possibly imply the same kind of
superiority and subordination.
The circumstance of greatest novelty in the position of the
Chief which the Brehon law appears to me to bring out is this:
Whatever else a Chief is, he is before all things a rich man;
not, however, rich, as popular assoCiations would lead us to
anticipate, in land, but in live stock -- in flocks and herds, in
sheep, and before all things in oxen. Here let me interpose the
remark, that the opposition commonly set up between birth and
wealth, and particularly wealth other than landed property, is
entirely modern. In French literature, so far as my knowledge
extends, it first appears when the riches of the financial
officers of the French monarchy -- the Superintendents and
Farmers General -- begin to attract attention. With us it seems
to be exclusively the result of the great extension and
productiveness of industrial undertakings on the largest scale.
But the heroes of the Homeric poems are not only valiant but
wealthy (Odyss. xiv. 96-106); the warriors of the Nibelungen-Lied
are not only noble but rich. In the later Greek literature we
find pride of birth identified with pride in seven wealthy
ancestors in succession, epta pappoi plonsioi; and you are well
aware how rapidly and completely the aristocracy of wealth
assimilated itself in the Roman State to the aristocracy of
blood. Passing to the Irish Chief, we find the tract called the
'Cain-Aigillne' laying down (p. 279) that 'the head of every
tribe should be the man of the tribe who is the most experienced,
the most noble, the most wealthy, the most learned, the most
truly popular, the most powerful to oppose, the most steadfast to
sue for profits and to be sued for losses.' There are many other
passages to the same effect; and on closely examining the system
(as I propose to do presently) we can perceive that personal
wealth was the principal condition of the Chief's maintaining his
position and authority.
But while the Brehon laws suggest that the possession of
personal wealth is a condition of the maintenance of
chieftainship, they show with much distinctness that through the
acquisition of such wealth the road was always open to
chieftainship. We are not altogether without knowledge that in
some European societies the humble freeman might be raised by
wealth to the position which afterwards became modern nobility.
One fact, among the very few which are tolerably well ascertained
respecting the specific origin of particular modern aristocracies
is, that a portion of the Danish nobility were originally
peasants; and there are in the early English laws some traces of
a process by which a Ceorl might become a Thane. These might be
facts standing by themselves, and undoubtedly there is strong
reason to suspect that the commencements of aristocracy were
multifold: but the Brehon tracts point out in several places,
with legal minuteness, the mode in which a peasant freeman in
ancient Ireland could become a chief. There are few personages of
greater interest spoken of in these laws than the Bo-Aire,
literally the 'cow-nobleman.' He is, to begin with, simply a
peasant who has grown rich in cattle, probably through obtaining
the use of large portions of tribe-land. The true nobles, or
Aires -- a word striking from its consonance with words of
similar meaning in the Teutonic languages -- are divided, though
we can scarcely believe the classification to correspond with an
universal fact, into seven grades. Each grade is distinguished
from the others by the amount of wealth possessed by the Chief
belonging to it, by the weight attached to his evidence, by his
power of binding his tribe by contracts (literally of
'knotting'), by the dues which he receives in kind from his
vassals according to a system to be presently described, and by
his Honor-Price, or special damages incurred by injuring him. At
the bottom of the scale is the chief or noble called the
Aire-desa; and the Brehon law provides that when the Bo-Aire has
acquired twice the wealth of an Aire-desa, and has held it for a
certain number of generations, he becomes an Aire-desa himself.
The advantage secured to wealth does not, you see, exclude
respect for birth, but works into it. 'He is an inferior chief,'
says the 'Senchus Mor,' 'whose father was not a chief;' and there
are many other strong assertions of the reverence due to
inherited rank. The primary view of chieftainship is evidently
that it springs from purity or dignity of blood, but noble birth
is regarded as naturally associated with wealth, and he who
becomes rich gradually climbs to a position indistinguishable
from that which he would have occupied if he had been nobly born.
What is thus new in the system is the clear account of nobility
as a status, having its origin in the organic structure of
ancient society, but nevertheless in practice having perpetually
fresh beginnings.
The enormous importance which belongs to wealth and specially
to wealth in cattle, in the early Aryan society reflected by the
Brehon tracts, helps, I think, to clear up one great difficulty
which meets us on the threshold of an enquiry into the origin of
aristocracies. I suppose that the popular theory on the subject
of the privileged class in modern communities is that it was
originally indebted for its status, if not for its power or
influence, to kingly favour. An Englishman once questioned the
Emperor Paul of Russia on the position of the Russian nobility.
'The only man who is noble in my dominions,' said the Czar, 'is
the man to whom I speak, for the time that I am speaking to him.'
I merely take these words as the strongest possible statement of
the view to which I am referring; but they were used by a monarch
with a disturbed brain, whose authority had contracted something
of an Oriental character from its long subordination to Tartar
power, and they were never absolutely true even of Russia. Among
ourselves, however, the favourite assumption seems certainly to
be, however slight may be the practical consequences we draw from
it, that all aristocratic privilege had its origin in kingly
grace; and this appears, on the whole, to be the theory of
English law. But the institutions of many parts of the Continent
long retained the traces of a different set of ideas, and these
were found where kingly power was actually much greater than in
England. The French Noblesse, before the Revolution, would as a
body have resented the assertion that they were a creation of the
King, and the Kings of France more than once admitted that they
were only the most exalted members of a class to which their own
nobility belonged.
Kings have everywhere nowadays, and in many countries have
had for centuries, a monopoly of the power of ennobling. This
road to nobility has been so long trodden, that men in general
have almost forgotten there ever was another route. Yet
historical scholars have long known that nobility conferred by
royal grant was, in one sense, a modern institution, though they
have not succeeded in completely explaining how it came to
supplant or dwarf the institution upon which it was engrafted.
There seems to be no doubt that the first aristocracy springing
from kingly favour consisted of the Comitatus, or Companions of
the King. Although there is a good deal of evidence that the
class was at first considered in some way servile, it gradually
became in some countries the type of all nobility. A few
tolerably familiar facts may serve to remind us how remarkable
has been the fortune of the royal households all over Western
Europe. The Mayor of the Frankish Palace became King of the
Franks. The Chamberlain of the Romano-German Emperors is now the
German Emperor. The blood of the Steward of Scotland runs in the
veins of the Kings of England. The Constables of France
repeatedly shook or saved the French throne. Among ourselves the
great officers of the Royal Council and Household still take
precedence either of all Peers or of all Peers of their own
degree. Whence, then, came this great exaltation of the Mayor or
Count of the Palace, of the great Seneschal or Steward, of the
high Chancellor, the Great Chamberlain, and High Constable --
titles which, when they do not mark an office originally
clerical, point to an occupation which must at first have been
menial?
It seems certain that the household sprang from very humble
beginnings. Tacitus describes the companions of the Germanic
chief as living with him in his house and supported by his
bounty. Mr Stubbs when stating ('Constitutional History,' p. 150)
that 'the gesiths of an (English) king were his guard and private
council,' observes that the 'free household servants of a ceorl
are also in a certain sense his gesiths.' The Companions of the
King appear also in the Irish legal literature, but they are not
noble, and they are associated with the king's body-guard, which
is essentially servile. The King of Erin, though he never existed
(strictly speaking), save for short intervals, yet always, so to
speak tended to exist, and the Crith Gablach, a Brehon tract of
which a translation is given at the end of Sullivan's edition of
O'Curry's Lectures, contains a picture of his palace and state.
The edifice intended to be described is apparently very much the
same as the great Icelandic house of which Mr Dasent, in the
'Story of Burnt Njal,' has attempted to give a drawing from the
descriptions found in Norse literature. In it the King feasts his
guests, from kings and king's sons to a ghastly company of
prisoners in fetters, the forfeited hostages of subject-chiefs or
sub-septs who have broken their engagements. The Companions are
there also, and they are stated to consist of his privileged
tenantry and of his body guard, which is composed of men whom he
has delivered from death, jail, or servitude, never (a
significant exception) of men whom he has saved on the
battle-field. I am afraid that the picture of Irish society
supplied by the Crith Gablach must throughout be regarded as to a
great extent ideal or theoretical; at any rate, there is much
testimony from English visitors to Ireland that many considerable
Irish Chiefs were much more humbly furnished out than the King of
Erin at Tara. Yet it is very likely that they all had Companions
attending them, and I suspect that the obligation of. maintaining
a little court had much to do with that strange privilege which
in later times had a deplorable history; the right of the Chief
to go with a following to the dwellings of his tenants and there
be feasted at the tenant's expense. That even petty Chiefs of the
Scottish Highlands had a retinue of the same character is known
to all who can recall that immortal picture of Celtic society
which for the first time brought it home to men who were nearly
our contemporaries that ancient Celtic life and manners had
existed almost down to their days -- the novel of 'Waverley.'
It seems extremely probable that, in a particular stage of
society, this personal service to the Chief or King was
everywhere rendered in expectation of reward in the shape of a
gift of land. The Companions of the Teutonic kings, in
Continental Europe, shared largely in the Benefices-grants of
Roman provincial land fully peopled and stocked. In ancient
England the same class are believed to have been the largest
grantees of public land next to the Church; and doubtless we have
here part of the secret of the mysterious change by which a new
nobility of Thanes, deriving dignity and authority from the King,
absorbed the older nobility of Eorls. But we are a little apt to
forget the plentifulness of land in countries lying beyond the
northern and western limits of the Roman Empire, or just within
them. Mr Thorold Rogers, writing of a period relatively much
later, and founding his opinion on the extant evidence of returns
from manor-lands, speaks of land as the 'cheapest commodity of
the Middle Ages.' The practical difficulty was not to obtain
land, but the instruments for making it productive; and hence, in
a society older relatively than any Teutonic society of which we
have any distinct knowledge, that very society which the Brehon
tracts enable us to understand, it may very well have been that
the object of suit at court was much less to obtain land than to
obtain cattle. The Chief, as I have already said, was before all
things rich in flocks and herds. He was military leader, and a
great part of his wealth must have been spoil of war, but in his
civil capacity he multiplied his kine through his growing power
of appropriating the waste for pasture, and through a system of
dispersing his herds among the tribesmen, which will be described
in the next Lecture. The Companion who followed him to the foray,
or was ready to do so, cannot but have been enriched by his
bounty; and thus, if already noble, he became greater; if he was
not noble, the way to nobility lay through wealth. The passage
which I am about to read to you may serve to illustrate what
probably took place, though there is nothing except common
humanity to connect the tribes of whose customs it speaks with
the primitive Teutons and Celts. The Rev H. Dugmore, in a most
interesting volume, called a 'Compendium of Kafir Laws and
Customs,' and published at the Wesleyan Missionary Press, Mount
Coke, British Kaffraria, writes thus of much the most advanced of
the South African native races, the Kafirs or Zulus (p. 27): 'As
cattle constitute the sole wealth of the people, so they are
their only medium of such transactions as involve exchange,
payment, or reward. The retainers of a chief serve him for
cattle; nor is it expected that he could maintain his influence,
or indeed secure any number of followers, if unable to provide
them with what at once constitutes their money, food, and
clothing. He requires, then, a constant fund from which to
satisfy his dependants; and the amount of the fund required may
be judged of from the character of the demand made upon him. His
retinue, court, or whatever it is to be called, consists of men
from all parts of the tribe, the young, the clever, and the
brave, who come to do court service for a time, that they may
obtain cattle to furnish them with the means of procuring wives,
arms, or other objects of desire. On obtaining these they return
to their homes and give place to others. Thus the immediate
retinue of a chief is continually changing, and constitutes a
permanent drain on his resources.' Mr Dugmore goes on to state
that the sources of the chief's wealth are the inherited cattle
of his father, offerings made to him on the ceremony of his
circumcision, benevolences levied from his tribe, fines and
confiscations, and the results of predatory excursions.
The remarkable part played by kine in ancient Irish society
will, I hope, be made more intelligible in the next Lecture.
Meantime, let me observe that the two Celtic societies included
in these islands which longest retained their ancient usages were
both notoriously given to the plunder of cattle. Lord Macaulay,
in speaking of Irish cattle-stealing, sometimes, I must own,
seems to me to express himself as if he thought the practice
attributable to some native vice of Irish character; but no doubt
it was what Mr Tylor has taught us to call a survival, an ancient
and inveterate habit, which in this case continued through the
misfortune which denied to Ireland the great condition of modern
legal ideas, a strong central government. The very same practice,
among the Celts of the Scottish Highlands and the rude Germanic
population of the Lowland Border, has almost been invested by one
man's genius with the dignity of a virtue. Again, turning to
'Waverley,' I suppose there is no truer representative of the
primitive Celtic chief than Donald Bean Lean, who drives the
cattle of Tully Veolan, and employs a soothsayer to predict the
number of beeves which are likely to come in his Way. He is a far
more genuine 'survival' than Fergus McIvor, who all but deserts
his cause for a disappointment about an earldom.
It has been pointed out that the status of the King's
Companions was at first in some way servile. Whenever legal
expression has to be given to the relations of the Comitatus to
the Teutonic kings, the portions of the Roman law selected are
uniformly those which declare the semi-servile relation of the
Client or Freedman to his Patron. The Brehon law permits us to
take the same view of the corresponding class in Celtic
societies. Several texts indicate that a Chief of high degree is
always expected to surround himself with unfree dependants; and
you will recollect that the retinue of the King of Erin was to
consist not only of free tribesmen but of a bodyguard of men
bound to him by servile obligations. So far as it goes, I quite
agree with the explanation which Mr Freeman has given of the
original connection between servile status and that nobility with
which the primitive nobility of birth has become mixed up and
confounded. 'The lowly clientage,' he says, 'of the Roman
Patrician and the noble following of the Hellenic and Teutonic
leader may really come from the same source, and may both alike
be parts of the same primeval heritage.' (' Comparative
Politics,' p. 261.) But perhaps we may permit ourselves to go a
step beyond this account. The Comitatus or Companions of the
Chief, even when they were freemen, were not necessarily Or
ordinarily his near kindred. Their dependence on him, carrying
with it friendship and affection, would in modern societies place
them in a position well understood, and on something like an
equality with him; but in the beginning of things one man was
always the kinsman, the slave, or the enemy of another, and mere
friendship and affection would, by themselves, create no tie
between man and man. In order that they might have any reality,
they would have to be considered as establishing one of the
relations known to that stage of thought. Between equals this
would be assumed or fictitious kinship. But between the Chief who
embodied purity of tribal descent and his associates, it would
have more or less to follow the pattern of the slave's dependence
on his master, and, where the Companion was not actually the
Chief's slave, the bond which connected them would very probably
be adapted to the more honourable model furnished by the relation
between ex-slave and ex-master.
Nothing seems to me to have been more clearly shown by recent
researches than the necessity of keeping apart the Tribe and the
Tribal Chief as distinct sources of positive institutions. The
lines of descent are constantly entwined, but each of them is
found to run up in the end to an independent origin. If I were to
apply this assertion to political history, I should be only
repeating much of what has been said by Mr Freeman in his
excellent work on 'Comparative Politics.' Confining myself to the
history of private institutions, let me observe that the
distinction which I have drawn should be carefully borne in mind
by those who desire to penetrate to the beginnings of Property in
Land. The subject has been greatly obscured by the practice, now
brought home to the early writers on feudal law, of
systematically passing over or misconstruing all forms of
proprietary enjoyment which they could not explain on their own
principles; and hitherto the truth has only been directly seen
through some of the rules of tenure. It may now, however, be laid
down without rashness that Property in Land, as known to
communities of the Aryan race, has had a twofold origin. It has
arisen partly from the disentanglement of the individual rights
of the kindred or tribesmen from the collective rights of the
Family or Tribe, and partly from the growth and transmutation of
the sovereignty of the Tribal Chief. The phenomena attributable
to the double process seem to me easily distinguishable from one
another. Both the sovereignty of the Chief and the ownership of
land by the Family or Tribe were in most of Western Europe passed
through the crucible of feudalism; but the first reappeared in
some well-marked characteristics of military or knightly tenures,
and the last in the principal rules of non-noble holdings, and
among them of Socage, the distinctive tenure of the free farmer.
The status of the Chief has thus left us one bequest in the rule
of Primogeniture, which, however, has long lost its most ancient
form; another in the right to receive certain dues and to enforce
certain monopolies; and a third in a specially absolute form of
property which was once exclusively enjoyed by the Chief, and
after him by the Lord, in the portion of the tribal territory
which formed his own domain. On the other hand, several systems
of succession after death, and among them the equal division of
the land between the children, have sprung out of tribal
ownership in various stages of decay; and it has left another set
of traces (not quite so widely extended), in a number of minute
customary rules which govern tillage and occasionally regulate
the distribution of the produce.
The fate of this double set of institutions in England and in
France appears to me most instructive. I have frequently dwelt in
this place on the erroneousness of the vulgar opinion which dates
the extreme subdivision of the soil of France from the first
French Revolution, and from the sale of the Church lands and of
the estates of the emigrant nobility. A writer -- I was going to
say as commonly read as Arthur Young, but certainly as often
mentioned as if he were commonly read -- notices this
morcellement, on the very eve of the French Revolution, and
immediately after it, as the great feature which distinguished
France from England. 'From what we see in England,' he says,
('Travels in 1787, '88, and, '89' p. 407) ' we cannot form an
idea of the abundance in France of small properties, that is,
little farms belonging to those who cultivate them.' He estimates
that more than a third of the kingdom was occupied by them -- a
very large proportion, when the extent of Church land in France
is taken into account; but recent French investigations have
shown reasons for thinking that the true proportion was still
larger, and that it was rather growing than diminishing, through
that extravagance of the nobles which Court life fostered, and
which compelled them to sell their domains to peasants in small
parcels. Young clearly saw that this subdivision of the soil was
the result of some legal rule; and strongly dissenting from the
Revolutionary leaders who wished to carry it farther, he declared
that 'a law ought to be passed to render all division below a
certain number of arpents illegal.'
It seems to have very generally escaped notice that the law
of equal or nearly equal division after death was the general law
of France. The rule of primogeniture was of exceptional
application, and was for the most part confined to lands held by
knightly tenure; indeed, in the South of France, where the custom
of equal division was strengthened by the identical rule of the
Roman jurisprudence, the privileges of the eldest son were only
secured by calling in the exceptional rules of which the Roman
Law gives the benefit to milites (or soldiers on service) when
making their wills or regulating their successions, and by laying
down that every chevalier, and every noble of higher degree, was
a miles within the meaning of the Roman juridical writers. The
two systems of succession and the two forms of property lay side
by side, and there were men alive quite recently who could
remember the bitter animosities caused by their co-existence and
antagonism. A very great part of the land held by laymen belonged
to the peasantry, and descended according to the rule of equal
division, but eldest son after eldest son succeeded to the
signory. Yet it was not the rule of primogeniture followed in
noble descents which was the true grievance; at most it became a
grievance under the influence of the peculiar vein of sentiment
introduced by Rousseau. The legacy from tribal sovereignty to
signorial privilege, which was really resented, was that which I
placed second in order. The right to receive feudal dues and to
enforce petty monopolies, now almost extinguished in England by
the measures to which the Copyhold Commission has given effect,
had ceased long before the end of the last century to be of any
considerable importance to the class which was invested with it;
but M. de Tocqueville has explained, in his 'Ancien Régime' (i.
18), that it made up almost the entire means of living which the
majority of the French nobility possessed. A certain number of
noblemen, besides their feudal rights, had their terres, or
domain, belonging to them in absolute property, and sometimes of
enormous extent; and the wealthiest members of this limited
class, the grands, who so frequently appear in French Court
history, but who, away from the Court, were much the most
respected and beloved of their order, formed the counterpart,
from the legal point of view, of the English landed proprietary.
The rest of the nobles lived mainly, not on rent, but on their
feudal dues, and eked out a meagre subsistence by serving the
King in arms. The sense of property in the soil was thus not in
the lord but in the peasantry; and the peasantry viewed the
exercise of signorial rights with a feeling closely akin to that
which is inspired by a highly oppressive tax. The condition of
sentiment produced by it is even now a political force of some
moment in France; and a similar, though a far weaker, repulsion
is known to have been caused in this country by the taking of
tithes in kind. It is a significant fact that, where the
ownership is acknowledged to reside in the superior holder, the
exaction of even an extreme rent from the tenants below has very
rarely been regarded with the same bitterness of resentment.
The change, therefore, which took place in France at the
first Revolution was this: the land-law of the people superseded
the land-law of the nobles, In England the converse process has
been gone through, and what has occurred is obviously in harmony
with much else in English history. The system of the nobles has
become in all essential particulars the system of the people. The
rule of primogeniture, which once applied only to knightly
holdings, came to apply to the great bulk of English tenures,
except the Gavelkind of Kent and some others of merely local
importance. This part of the change took place at a remote epoch,
and its circumstances are involved in much obscurity; and we know
little more of it with certainty than that it was rapidly
proceeding between the time at which Glanville and the time at
which Bracton wrote. Glanville, probably not earlier than the
thirty-third year of Henry the Second's reign, expresses himself
as if the general rule of law caused lands held by free
cultivators in socage to be divided equally between all the male
children at the death of the last owner; Bracton, probably not
later than the fifty-second year of Henry the Third, writes as if
the rule of primogeniture applied universally to military tenures
and generally to socage tenures. But another branch of the
process was postponed almost to our own day. Possibly not many
Englishmen have recognised with as much clearness as a recent
French writer (Doniol, 'La Revolution Française et la Féodalité')
that the transmutation of customary and copyhold into freehold
property, which has been proceeding for about forty years under
the conduct of the Copyhold and Enclosure Commissioners, is the
peaceful and insensible removal of a grievance which did more
than any other to bring about the first French Revolution and to
prevent the re-establishment of the ancient political order. But
long before there was a Copyhold Commission, the great mass of
English landed property had assumed certain characteristics which
strongly distinguished it from the peasant property of the
Continent as it existed before it was affected by the French
Codes, and as it is still found in some countries. This last form
of proprietorship was very generally fettered by the duty of
cultivation in some particular way, and, as a rule, could not be
dealt with so as to bar the rights reserved to the children and
widow of the owner by the law of succession. The traces of a
similar species of ownership, probably once widely diffused, may
still be here and there discerned through the customs of
particular English manors. I repeat the opinion which I expressed
three years ago, that our modern English conception of absolute
property in land is really descended from the special
proprietorship enjoyed by the Lord, and more anciently by the
tribal Chief, in his own Domain. It would be out of place to
enter here on a discussion of the changes which seem to me
desirable in order to make the soil of England as freely
exchangeable as the theory now generally accepted demands; but to
the principle of several and absolute property in land I hold
this country to be committed. I believe I state the inference
suggested by all known legal history when I say that there can be
no material advance in civilisation unless landed property is
held by groups at least as small as Families; and I again remind
you that we are indebted to the peculiarly absolute English form
of ownership for such an achievement as the cultivation of the
soil of North America.
Before describing to you the new light which the Ancient Laws
of Ireland throw on the primitive condition of the institutions
of which I have been speaking, let me give you one word of
caution as to the statements of modern Irish writers respecting
the original relations of the Irish Tribe and of the Irish Tribal
Chief. Unhappily the subject has been discussed in the spirit of
the later agrarian history of Ireland. On the one hand, some
disputants have thought to serve a patriotic purpose by
contending that the land of each Tribe belonged absolutely to
itself and was its common property, and that the Chief was a mere
administrative officer, rewarded for his services in making a
fair distribution of the territory among the tribesmen by a
rather larger share of its area than the rest, which was allotted
to him as his domain. Contrariwise, some writers, not perhaps
actuated by much kindliness to the Irish people, have at least
suggested that they were always cruelly oppressed by their
superiors, and probably by their natural chiefs more than any
others. These authors point to the strong evidence of oppression
by the Chiefs which the books of the English observers of Ireland
contain. Edmund Spenser and Sir John Davis cannot have merely
intended to calumniate the Irish native aristocracy when they
emphatica1ly declared that the 'chiefs do most shamefully
rackrent their tenants,' and spoke with vehement indignation of
the exactions from which the tribesmen suffered, the 'coshering,'
and the 'coin and livery,' which occur over and over again in
their pages. A third school, of a very different order from
these, has representatives among the most learned Irishmen of our
day. They resent the assertion that the land belonged to the
tribe in common as practically imputing to the ancient Irish that
utter barbarism to which private property is unknown. They say
that traces of ownership jealously guarded are found in all parts
of the Brehon laws, and they are on the whole apt to speak of the
vassalage to the Chief which these laws attribute to the
tribesmen as if it implied something like modern tenancy in the
latter and modern ownership in the former. But they say that the
relation of landlord and tenant was regulated by careful and
kindly provisions, and they ascribe the degradation of the
system, like the other evils of Ireland, to English cupidity and
ignorance. The Norman nobles who first settled in Ireland are
well known to have become in time Chieftains of Irish Tribes; and
it is suggested that they were the first to forget their duties
to their tenants and to think of nothing but their privileges.
Nor is there anything incredible in this last assumption. An
English settler in India who buys land there is often reputed a
harder landlord than the native zemindars, his neighbours, not
because he intends to be harsher (indeed in some things he is
usually far more considerate and bountiful), but because he is
accustomed to a stricter system and cannot accommodate himself to
the loose and irregular play of relations between native
landowner and native tenant.
I cannot wholly concur in any one of these theories
concerning Chief and Tribe. Each seems to me to contain a portion
of truth, but not the whole. Let me first say that the whole
land-system shadowed forth in the Brehon laws does seem to me to
have for its basis the primary ownership of the tribe-land by the
Tribe. It is also true that the Chief appears to exercise certain
administrative duties in respect of this land, and that he has a
specific portion of the tribe-land allotted to him, in the
vicinity of his residence or stronghold, for the maintenance of
his household and relatives. But this is not all. As we see the
system through the law, it is not stationary, but shifting,
developing, disintegrating, re-combining. Even according to the
texts apparently oldest, much of the tribal territory appears to
have been permanently alienated to sub-tribes, families, or
dependent chiefs; and the glosses and commentaries show that,
before they were written, this process had gone very far indeed.
Whatever, again, may have been the original dignity and authority
of the Chief, they are plainly growing, not merely through the
introduction of alien principles and ideas, but from natural
causes, more or less operative all over Europe. The general
character of these causes is very much the same as in the
Germanic countries. The power of the Chief grows first through
the process which is called elsewhere 'commendation,' the process
by which the free tribesman becomes 'his man,' and remains in a
state of dependence having various degrees. It farther grows from
his increasing authority over the waste-lands of the tribal
territory and from the servile or semi-servile colonies he plants
there; and lastly, it augments from the material strength which
he acquires through the numbers of his immediate retainers and
associates, most of whom stand to him in more or less servile
relations. But the Brehon law tells us much that is novel and
surprising concerning the particular course of these changes and
their nature in detail. It furnishes us with some wholly new
ideas concerning the pas sage of society from inchoate to
complete feudalism, and helps us to complete the account of it
derived from Germanic sources. In this, as it seems to me, the
greatest part of its interest consists.
With the Chieftaincy of the Tribe the early history of modern
Aristocracy and modern Kingship begins. These two great
institutions had, in fact, at first the same history, and the
Western world long continued to bear the marks of their original
identity. The Manor with its Tenemental lands held by the free
tenants of the Lord, and with its Domain which was in immediate
dependence on him, was the type of all the feudal sovereignties
in their complete form, whether the ruler acknowledged a superior
above him or whether he at most admitted one in the Pope, or the
Emperor, or God himself. In every County, or Dukedom, or Kingdom
there were great tenants holding directly of its head and on some
sort of parity with him; and there was a Domain under his more
immediate government and at his immediate disposal. There is no
obscurer and more difficult subject than the origin of the class
whose power was the keystone of all these political and
proprietary constructions, and none on which the scantiest
contributions to our knowledge are more welcome.
There is one view of the original condition of privileged
classes which, though held by learned men, has been a good deal
weakened of late by German research, and seems to me still
farther shaken by portions of the Brehon law. This is the
impression that they always constituted, as they practically do
now, a distinct class or section of the community, each member of
the class standing in a closer relation to the other members than
to the rest of the national or tribal society to which all
belong. It cannot be doubted that the earliest modern
aristocracies have as a fact, when they are first discerned, this
particular aspect. Mr Freeman ('Norman Conquest,' i. 88) says
that the 'difference between eorl and ceorl is a primary fact
from which we start.' Tacitus plainly distinguished the noble
from the non-noble freeman in the Germanic societies which he
observed; and Caesar, as I stated in another Lecture, divides all
the Continental Celtic tribes into the Equites and the Plebs. We
can understand that a spectator looking at a set of tribal
communities from the outside would naturally class together all
men visibly exalted above the rest; but nevertheless this is not
quite the appearance which early Germanic society wears in the
eyes of enquirers who follow the method of Von Maurer and Landau.
Each Chief or Lord appears to them to have been noble less with
reference to other noblemen than with reference to the other free
tribesmen comprised in the same group with himself. Nobility has
many diverse origins; but its chief source seems to have been the
respect of co-villagers or assemblages of kinsmen for the line of
descent in which the purest blood of each little society was
believed to be preserved. Similarly, the Brehon law suggests that
the Irish Chiefs were not the class by themselves which the
corresponding order among the Continental Celts appeared to
Caesar to be, but were necessarily the heads of separate groups
composed of their kindred or of their vassals. 'Every chief,'
says the text which I quoted before, 'rules over his land,
whether it be great or whether it be small.' And while the Irish
law describes the way (as I shall point out) in which a common
freeman can become a chief, it also shows that the position to
which he attains is the presidency of a group of dependants.
Nevertheless the persons thus elevated undoubtedly tend to
become, from various causes, a class by themselves and a special
section of the general community; and it is very probable that
the tendency was at work from the earliest times. It is farther
to be remarked that some aristocracies were really a section of
the community from the very first. This structure of society is
produced where one entire tribal group conquers or imposes its
supremacy upon other tribal groups also remaining entire, or
where an original body of tribesmen, villagers, or citizens,
gradually gathers round itself a miscellaneous assemblage of
protected dependants. There are many known instances of both
processes, and the particular relation of tribal groups which the
former implies was certainly not unknown to the Celtic societies.
Among the Scottish Highlanders some entire septs or clans are
stated to have been enslaved to others; and on the very threshold
of Irish history we meet with a distinction between free and
rent-paying tribes which may possibly imply the same kind of
superiority and subordination.
The circumstance of greatest novelty in the position of the
Chief which the Brehon law appears to me to bring out is this:
Whatever else a Chief is, he is before all things a rich man;
not, however, rich, as popular assoCiations would lead us to
anticipate, in land, but in live stock -- in flocks and herds, in
sheep, and before all things in oxen. Here let me interpose the
remark, that the opposition commonly set up between birth and
wealth, and particularly wealth other than landed property, is
entirely modern. In French literature, so far as my knowledge
extends, it first appears when the riches of the financial
officers of the French monarchy -- the Superintendents and
Farmers General -- begin to attract attention. With us it seems
to be exclusively the result of the great extension and
productiveness of industrial undertakings on the largest scale.
But the heroes of the Homeric poems are not only valiant but
wealthy (Odyss. xiv. 96-106); the warriors of the Nibelungen-Lied
are not only noble but rich. In the later Greek literature we
find pride of birth identified with pride in seven wealthy
ancestors in succession, epta pappoi plonsioi; and you are well
aware how rapidly and completely the aristocracy of wealth
assimilated itself in the Roman State to the aristocracy of
blood. Passing to the Irish Chief, we find the tract called the
'Cain-Aigillne' laying down (p. 279) that 'the head of every
tribe should be the man of the tribe who is the most experienced,
the most noble, the most wealthy, the most learned, the most
truly popular, the most powerful to oppose, the most steadfast to
sue for profits and to be sued for losses.' There are many other
passages to the same effect; and on closely examining the system
(as I propose to do presently) we can perceive that personal
wealth was the principal condition of the Chief's maintaining his
position and authority.
But while the Brehon laws suggest that the possession of
personal wealth is a condition of the maintenance of
chieftainship, they show with much distinctness that through the
acquisition of such wealth the road was always open to
chieftainship. We are not altogether without knowledge that in
some European societies the humble freeman might be raised by
wealth to the position which afterwards became modern nobility.
One fact, among the very few which are tolerably well ascertained
respecting the specific origin of particular modern aristocracies
is, that a portion of the Danish nobility were originally
peasants; and there are in the early English laws some traces of
a process by which a Ceorl might become a Thane. These might be
facts standing by themselves, and undoubtedly there is strong
reason to suspect that the commencements of aristocracy were
multifold: but the Brehon tracts point out in several places,
with legal minuteness, the mode in which a peasant freeman in
ancient Ireland could become a chief. There are few personages of
greater interest spoken of in these laws than the Bo-Aire,
literally the 'cow-nobleman.' He is, to begin with, simply a
peasant who has grown rich in cattle, probably through obtaining
the use of large portions of tribe-land. The true nobles, or
Aires -- a word striking from its consonance with words of
similar meaning in the Teutonic languages -- are divided, though
we can scarcely believe the classification to correspond with an
universal fact, into seven grades. Each grade is distinguished
from the others by the amount of wealth possessed by the Chief
belonging to it, by the weight attached to his evidence, by his
power of binding his tribe by contracts (literally of
'knotting'), by the dues which he receives in kind from his
vassals according to a system to be presently described, and by
his Honor-Price, or special damages incurred by injuring him. At
the bottom of the scale is the chief or noble called the
Aire-desa; and the Brehon law provides that when the Bo-Aire has
acquired twice the wealth of an Aire-desa, and has held it for a
certain number of generations, he becomes an Aire-desa himself.
The advantage secured to wealth does not, you see, exclude
respect for birth, but works into it. 'He is an inferior chief,'
says the 'Senchus Mor,' 'whose father was not a chief;' and there
are many other strong assertions of the reverence due to
inherited rank. The primary view of chieftainship is evidently
that it springs from purity or dignity of blood, but noble birth
is regarded as naturally associated with wealth, and he who
becomes rich gradually climbs to a position indistinguishable
from that which he would have occupied if he had been nobly born.
What is thus new in the system is the clear account of nobility
as a status, having its origin in the organic structure of
ancient society, but nevertheless in practice having perpetually
fresh beginnings.
The enormous importance which belongs to wealth and specially
to wealth in cattle, in the early Aryan society reflected by the
Brehon tracts, helps, I think, to clear up one great difficulty
which meets us on the threshold of an enquiry into the origin of
aristocracies. I suppose that the popular theory on the subject
of the privileged class in modern communities is that it was
originally indebted for its status, if not for its power or
influence, to kingly favour. An Englishman once questioned the
Emperor Paul of Russia on the position of the Russian nobility.
'The only man who is noble in my dominions,' said the Czar, 'is
the man to whom I speak, for the time that I am speaking to him.'
I merely take these words as the strongest possible statement of
the view to which I am referring; but they were used by a monarch
with a disturbed brain, whose authority had contracted something
of an Oriental character from its long subordination to Tartar
power, and they were never absolutely true even of Russia. Among
ourselves, however, the favourite assumption seems certainly to
be, however slight may be the practical consequences we draw from
it, that all aristocratic privilege had its origin in kingly
grace; and this appears, on the whole, to be the theory of
English law. But the institutions of many parts of the Continent
long retained the traces of a different set of ideas, and these
were found where kingly power was actually much greater than in
England. The French Noblesse, before the Revolution, would as a
body have resented the assertion that they were a creation of the
King, and the Kings of France more than once admitted that they
were only the most exalted members of a class to which their own
nobility belonged.
Kings have everywhere nowadays, and in many countries have
had for centuries, a monopoly of the power of ennobling. This
road to nobility has been so long trodden, that men in general
have almost forgotten there ever was another route. Yet
historical scholars have long known that nobility conferred by
royal grant was, in one sense, a modern institution, though they
have not succeeded in completely explaining how it came to
supplant or dwarf the institution upon which it was engrafted.
There seems to be no doubt that the first aristocracy springing
from kingly favour consisted of the Comitatus, or Companions of
the King. Although there is a good deal of evidence that the
class was at first considered in some way servile, it gradually
became in some countries the type of all nobility. A few
tolerably familiar facts may serve to remind us how remarkable
has been the fortune of the royal households all over Western
Europe. The Mayor of the Frankish Palace became King of the
Franks. The Chamberlain of the Romano-German Emperors is now the
German Emperor. The blood of the Steward of Scotland runs in the
veins of the Kings of England. The Constables of France
repeatedly shook or saved the French throne. Among ourselves the
great officers of the Royal Council and Household still take
precedence either of all Peers or of all Peers of their own
degree. Whence, then, came this great exaltation of the Mayor or
Count of the Palace, of the great Seneschal or Steward, of the
high Chancellor, the Great Chamberlain, and High Constable --
titles which, when they do not mark an office originally
clerical, point to an occupation which must at first have been
menial?
It seems certain that the household sprang from very humble
beginnings. Tacitus describes the companions of the Germanic
chief as living with him in his house and supported by his
bounty. Mr Stubbs when stating ('Constitutional History,' p. 150)
that 'the gesiths of an (English) king were his guard and private
council,' observes that the 'free household servants of a ceorl
are also in a certain sense his gesiths.' The Companions of the
King appear also in the Irish legal literature, but they are not
noble, and they are associated with the king's body-guard, which
is essentially servile. The King of Erin, though he never existed
(strictly speaking), save for short intervals, yet always, so to
speak tended to exist, and the Crith Gablach, a Brehon tract of
which a translation is given at the end of Sullivan's edition of
O'Curry's Lectures, contains a picture of his palace and state.
The edifice intended to be described is apparently very much the
same as the great Icelandic house of which Mr Dasent, in the
'Story of Burnt Njal,' has attempted to give a drawing from the
descriptions found in Norse literature. In it the King feasts his
guests, from kings and king's sons to a ghastly company of
prisoners in fetters, the forfeited hostages of subject-chiefs or
sub-septs who have broken their engagements. The Companions are
there also, and they are stated to consist of his privileged
tenantry and of his body guard, which is composed of men whom he
has delivered from death, jail, or servitude, never (a
significant exception) of men whom he has saved on the
battle-field. I am afraid that the picture of Irish society
supplied by the Crith Gablach must throughout be regarded as to a
great extent ideal or theoretical; at any rate, there is much
testimony from English visitors to Ireland that many considerable
Irish Chiefs were much more humbly furnished out than the King of
Erin at Tara. Yet it is very likely that they all had Companions
attending them, and I suspect that the obligation of. maintaining
a little court had much to do with that strange privilege which
in later times had a deplorable history; the right of the Chief
to go with a following to the dwellings of his tenants and there
be feasted at the tenant's expense. That even petty Chiefs of the
Scottish Highlands had a retinue of the same character is known
to all who can recall that immortal picture of Celtic society
which for the first time brought it home to men who were nearly
our contemporaries that ancient Celtic life and manners had
existed almost down to their days -- the novel of 'Waverley.'
It seems extremely probable that, in a particular stage of
society, this personal service to the Chief or King was
everywhere rendered in expectation of reward in the shape of a
gift of land. The Companions of the Teutonic kings, in
Continental Europe, shared largely in the Benefices-grants of
Roman provincial land fully peopled and stocked. In ancient
England the same class are believed to have been the largest
grantees of public land next to the Church; and doubtless we have
here part of the secret of the mysterious change by which a new
nobility of Thanes, deriving dignity and authority from the King,
absorbed the older nobility of Eorls. But we are a little apt to
forget the plentifulness of land in countries lying beyond the
northern and western limits of the Roman Empire, or just within
them. Mr Thorold Rogers, writing of a period relatively much
later, and founding his opinion on the extant evidence of returns
from manor-lands, speaks of land as the 'cheapest commodity of
the Middle Ages.' The practical difficulty was not to obtain
land, but the instruments for making it productive; and hence, in
a society older relatively than any Teutonic society of which we
have any distinct knowledge, that very society which the Brehon
tracts enable us to understand, it may very well have been that
the object of suit at court was much less to obtain land than to
obtain cattle. The Chief, as I have already said, was before all
things rich in flocks and herds. He was military leader, and a
great part of his wealth must have been spoil of war, but in his
civil capacity he multiplied his kine through his growing power
of appropriating the waste for pasture, and through a system of
dispersing his herds among the tribesmen, which will be described
in the next Lecture. The Companion who followed him to the foray,
or was ready to do so, cannot but have been enriched by his
bounty; and thus, if already noble, he became greater; if he was
not noble, the way to nobility lay through wealth. The passage
which I am about to read to you may serve to illustrate what
probably took place, though there is nothing except common
humanity to connect the tribes of whose customs it speaks with
the primitive Teutons and Celts. The Rev H. Dugmore, in a most
interesting volume, called a 'Compendium of Kafir Laws and
Customs,' and published at the Wesleyan Missionary Press, Mount
Coke, British Kaffraria, writes thus of much the most advanced of
the South African native races, the Kafirs or Zulus (p. 27): 'As
cattle constitute the sole wealth of the people, so they are
their only medium of such transactions as involve exchange,
payment, or reward. The retainers of a chief serve him for
cattle; nor is it expected that he could maintain his influence,
or indeed secure any number of followers, if unable to provide
them with what at once constitutes their money, food, and
clothing. He requires, then, a constant fund from which to
satisfy his dependants; and the amount of the fund required may
be judged of from the character of the demand made upon him. His
retinue, court, or whatever it is to be called, consists of men
from all parts of the tribe, the young, the clever, and the
brave, who come to do court service for a time, that they may
obtain cattle to furnish them with the means of procuring wives,
arms, or other objects of desire. On obtaining these they return
to their homes and give place to others. Thus the immediate
retinue of a chief is continually changing, and constitutes a
permanent drain on his resources.' Mr Dugmore goes on to state
that the sources of the chief's wealth are the inherited cattle
of his father, offerings made to him on the ceremony of his
circumcision, benevolences levied from his tribe, fines and
confiscations, and the results of predatory excursions.
The remarkable part played by kine in ancient Irish society
will, I hope, be made more intelligible in the next Lecture.
Meantime, let me observe that the two Celtic societies included
in these islands which longest retained their ancient usages were
both notoriously given to the plunder of cattle. Lord Macaulay,
in speaking of Irish cattle-stealing, sometimes, I must own,
seems to me to express himself as if he thought the practice
attributable to some native vice of Irish character; but no doubt
it was what Mr Tylor has taught us to call a survival, an ancient
and inveterate habit, which in this case continued through the
misfortune which denied to Ireland the great condition of modern
legal ideas, a strong central government. The very same practice,
among the Celts of the Scottish Highlands and the rude Germanic
population of the Lowland Border, has almost been invested by one
man's genius with the dignity of a virtue. Again, turning to
'Waverley,' I suppose there is no truer representative of the
primitive Celtic chief than Donald Bean Lean, who drives the
cattle of Tully Veolan, and employs a soothsayer to predict the
number of beeves which are likely to come in his Way. He is a far
more genuine 'survival' than Fergus McIvor, who all but deserts
his cause for a disappointment about an earldom.
It has been pointed out that the status of the King's
Companions was at first in some way servile. Whenever legal
expression has to be given to the relations of the Comitatus to
the Teutonic kings, the portions of the Roman law selected are
uniformly those which declare the semi-servile relation of the
Client or Freedman to his Patron. The Brehon law permits us to
take the same view of the corresponding class in Celtic
societies. Several texts indicate that a Chief of high degree is
always expected to surround himself with unfree dependants; and
you will recollect that the retinue of the King of Erin was to
consist not only of free tribesmen but of a bodyguard of men
bound to him by servile obligations. So far as it goes, I quite
agree with the explanation which Mr Freeman has given of the
original connection between servile status and that nobility with
which the primitive nobility of birth has become mixed up and
confounded. 'The lowly clientage,' he says, 'of the Roman
Patrician and the noble following of the Hellenic and Teutonic
leader may really come from the same source, and may both alike
be parts of the same primeval heritage.' (' Comparative
Politics,' p. 261.) But perhaps we may permit ourselves to go a
step beyond this account. The Comitatus or Companions of the
Chief, even when they were freemen, were not necessarily Or
ordinarily his near kindred. Their dependence on him, carrying
with it friendship and affection, would in modern societies place
them in a position well understood, and on something like an
equality with him; but in the beginning of things one man was
always the kinsman, the slave, or the enemy of another, and mere
friendship and affection would, by themselves, create no tie
between man and man. In order that they might have any reality,
they would have to be considered as establishing one of the
relations known to that stage of thought. Between equals this
would be assumed or fictitious kinship. But between the Chief who
embodied purity of tribal descent and his associates, it would
have more or less to follow the pattern of the slave's dependence
on his master, and, where the Companion was not actually the
Chief's slave, the bond which connected them would very probably
be adapted to the more honourable model furnished by the relation
between ex-slave and ex-master.
The Brehon law-tracts strongly suggest that, among the things
which we in modern times have most forgotten, is the importance
of horned cattle, not merely in the infancy of society, but at a
period when it had made some considerable advance towards
maturity It is scarcely possible to turn over a page without
finding some allusion to beeves, to bulls, cows, heifers, and
calves. Horses appear, sheep, swine, and dogs; and bees, the
producers of the greatest of primitive luxuries, have a place
assigned to them as an article of property which has something
corresponding to it in old Roman law. But the animals much the
most frequently mentioned are kine. There are some few facts both
of etymology and of legal classification which point to the
former importance of oxen. Capitale -- kine reckoned by the
head-cattle -- has given birth to one of the most famous terms of
law and to one of the most famous terms of political economy,
Chattels and Capital. Pecunia was probably the word for money
which was employed by the largest part of mankind for the longest
time together. But oxen, though they have furnished a modern
synonym for personal property, were not, I need scarcely say,
classed in the lower order of commodities in all ancient systems
of law. The primitive Roman law placed them in the highest class,
and joined them with land and slaves as items of the Res Mancipi.
As in several other instances, the legal dignity of this
description of property among the Romans appears to answer to its
religious dignity among the Hindoos. Kine, which the most ancient
Sanscrit literature shows to have been eaten as food, became at
some unknown period sacred, and their flesh forbidden;
and.ultimately two of the chief 'Things which required a
Mancipation' at Rome, oxen and landed property, had their
counterpart in the sacred bull of Siva and the sacred land of
India.
The subject has possibly been obscured by an impression that
horned cattle were only of preeminent importance to mankind in
that pastoral stage of society which has been the theme of so
much not altogether profitable speculation. The actual evidence
seems to show that their greatest value was obtained when groups
of men settled on spaces of land and betook themselves to the
cultivation of food-grains. It is very possible that kine were at
first exclusively valued for their flesh and milk, but it is
clear that in very early times a distinct special importance
belonged to them as the instrument or medium of exchange. In the
Homeric literature, they are certainly a measure of value; there
seems no reason to doubt the traditional story that the earliest
coined money known at Rome was stamped with the figure of an ox;
and at all events the connection between 'pecus' and 'pecunia' is
unmistakeable. Part, but by no means all, the prominence given by
the Brehon lawyers to horned cattle wises certainly from their
usefulness in exchange. Throughout the Brehon tracts fines, dues,
rents, and returns are calculated in live-stock, not exclusively
in kine, but nearly so. Two standards of value are constantly
referred to, 'sed' and 'cumhal.' 'Cumhal' is said to have
originally meant a female slave, just as 'ancilla' in medieval
Latinity sometimes means the price of a slave-girl; but 'sed' is
plainly used for an amount or quantity of live stock, probably to
some small extent variable. The next stage, however, in the
history of cattle is that at which their service to mankind is
greatest. They are now valued chiefly, in some communities
exclusively, for their use in tillage, for their labour and their
manure. Their place has been taken very generally in Western
Europe by horses as beasts of plough, but the change was even
there both gradual and comparatively modern; and there are still
large portions of the world where the horse is exclusively
employed, as it seems everywhere to have been at one time, for
war, for pleasure, or the chase. Oxen were thus almost the sole
representatives of what a Political Economist would now call
Capital applied to land. I think it probable that the economical
causes which led to the disuse of oxen as a medium of exchange
led also to the change in their legal position which we find to
have taken place at Rome and in India. The sanctification of the
ox among the Hindoos, rendering his flesh unlawful as food, must
certainly have been connected with the desire to preserve him for
tillage, and his elevation to a place among the Res Mancipi may
well have been supposed to have the same tendency, since it made
his alienation extremely difficult, and must have greatly
embarrassed his employment in exchange. At this point the history
of horned cattle becomes unhappily mixed up with that of large
portions of mankind. The same causes which we perceive altering
the position of the ox and turning him into an animal partially
adscriptus glebaei undoubtedly produced also a great extension of
slavery. The plentifulness of land, even in what are considered
old countries, down to comparatively recent times, and the
scarcity of capital even in its rudest forms, seem to me to be
placed in the clearest light by Mr Thorold Rogers's deeply
instructive volumes on Agriculture and Prices during the Middle
Ages; and much in history which has been only partially
intelligible is explained by them. The enormous importation of
slaves into the central territories of the Roman Commonwealth,
and the wholesale degradation of the free cultivating communities
of Western Europe into assemblages of villeins, seem to be
expedients of the same nature as restrictions on the alienation
of the ox and on its consumption for food, and to have been alike
suggested by the same imperious necessity of procuring and
preserving instruments for the cultivation of land.
The importance of horned cattle to men in a particular state
of society must, as it seems to me, be carefully borne in mind if
we are to understand one of the most remarkable parts of the
ancient Irish law which relates to the practice of 'giving
stock.' I stated before that, though I did not draw the same
inferences from the fact, I agreed with the writers who think
that the land-system of ancient Ireland was theoretically based
on the division of the tribe-lands among the free tribesmen. But
I also said that in my opinion the true difficulty of those days
was not to obtain land but to obtain the means of cultivating it.
The want of capital, taken in its original sense, was the
necessity which pressed on the small holder of land and reduced
him occasionally to the sorest straits. On the other hand, the
great owners of cattle were the various Chiefs, whose primitive
superiority to the other tribesmen in this respect was probably
owing to their natural functions as military leaders of the
tribe. The Brehon law suggests to me that the Chiefs too were
pressed by a difficulty of their own, that of finding sufficient
pasturage for their herds. Doubtless their power over the
waste-lands of the particular group over which they happened to
preside was always growing, but the most fruitful portions of the
tribal territory would probably be those which the free tribesmen
occupied. The fact that the wealth of the Chiefs in cattle was
out of proportion to their power of dealing with the tribal
lands, and the fact that the tribesmen were every now and then
severely pressed by the necessity of procuring the means of
tillage, appear to me to supply the best explanation of the
system of giving and receiving stock, to which two sub-tracts of
the Senchus Mor are devoted, the Cain-Saerrath and the
Cain-Aigillne, the Law of Saer-stock tenure and the Law of
Daer-stock tenure.
The interest of these two compendia is very great. In the
first place, they go far to show us how it was that the power of
the tribal Chief increased, not merely over his servile
dependants, but over the free tribesmen among whom he had been at
first only primus inter pares. In the next, they give us, from
the authentic records of the ancient usages of one particular
society, a perfectly novel example of a proceeding by which
feudal vassalage was created. I need scarcely dwell on the
historical importance of the various agencies by which the
relation of Lord and Vassal was first established. It was by them
that the Western europe of the Roman despotism was changed into
the Western Europe of the feudal sovereignties. Nothing can be
more strikingly unlike in external aspect than the states of
society which are discerned on either side of the stormy interval
filled with the movement and subsidence of the barbarian
invasions. Just before it is reached, we see a large part of
mankind arranged, so to speak, on one vast level surface
dominated in every part by the overshadowing authority of the
Roman Emperor. On this they lie as so many equal units, connected
together by no institutions which are not assumed to be the
creation of positive Roman law; and between them and their
sovereign there is nothing but a host of functionaries who are
his servants. When feudal Europe has been constituted, all this
is changed. Everybody has become the subordinate of somebody else
higher than himself and yet exalted above him by no great
distance. If I may again employ an image used by me before,
society has taken the form of a pyramid or cone. The great
multitude of cultivators is at its base; and then it mounts up
through ever-narrowing sections till it approaches an apex, not
always visible, but always supposed to be discoverable, in the
Emperor, or the Pope, or God Almighty. There is strong reason to
believe that neither picture contains all the actual detail, and
that neither the theory of the Roman lawyers on one side nor the
theory of the feudal lawyers on the other accounts for or takes
notice of a number of customs and institutions which had a
practical existence in their day. Either theory was, however,
founded upon the most striking facts of the epoch at which it was
framed.
We know something, though not very much, of the formal
instrumentalities by which the later set of facts became so
extremely dissimilar to the earlier. Mr Stubbs ('Constitutional
History,' i. 252) has thus summarised the most modern views on
the subject. Feudalism 'had grown up from two great sources, the
Benefice and the practice of Commendation. The beneficiary system
originated partly in gifts of land made by the kings out of their
own estates to their kinsmen and servants, with a special
undertaking to be faithful, partly in the surrender by landowners
of their estates to churches or powerful men, to be received back
again and held by them as tenants for rent or service. By the
latter arrangement the weaker man obtained the protection of the
stronger, and he who felt himself insecure placed his title under
the defence of the Church. By the practice of Commendation, on
the other hand, the inferior put himself under the personal care
of a lord, but without altering his title or divesting himself of
his right to his estate; he became a vassal and did homage.'
Commendation, in particular, went on all over Western Europe with
singular universality of operation and singular uniformity of
result, and it helped to transform the ancient structure of
Teutonic society no less than the institutions of the Roman
Provincials. Yet there is considerable mystery about men's
motives for reporting to so onerous a proceeding, and the
statements of nearly all writers on the subject are general and
chiefly conjectural. Perhaps the most precise assertion which we
have been hitherto able to hazard as to the reasons of so large a
part of the world for voluntarily placing themselves in a
conditIon of personal subordination is, that they must have been
connected with the system of civil and criminal responsibility
which prevailed in those times. Families -- real or
artificial-natural or formed by agreement -- were responsible for
the offences and even for the civil liabilities of their members;
but corporate responsibility must have been replaced,
conveniently for all persons concerned, by the responsibility of
a single lord, who could prevent injury and pay compensation for
it, and whose testimony, in compurgation and other legal
proceedings, had a weight often assigned to it exceeding that of
several inferior persons combined. More generally, but with at
least equal plausibility, we can lay down that the general
disorder of the world had much to do with the growth of the new
institutions; and that a little society compactly united under a
feudal lord was greatly stronger for defence or attack than any
body of kinsmen or co-villagers and than any assemblage of
voluntary confederates. It would be absurd, however, to suppose
that we have materials for a confident opinion as to men's
motives for submitting themselves to a change which was probably
recommended to them or forced on them by very various
circumstances in different countries and in relatively different
stages of society.
I do not wish to generalise unduly from the new information
furnished by the Brehon law, but there has long been a suspicion
(I cannot call it more) among learned men that Celtic usages
would throw some light on Commendation, and, at any rate, amid
the dearth of our materials, any addition to them from an
authentic source is of value. Let me again state the impression I
have formed of the ancient Irish land-system, in the stage at
which it is revealed to us by the Brehon tracts. The land of the
tribe, whether cultivated or waste, belongs to the tribe, and
this is true, whether the tribe be a joint-family of kinsmen or a
larger and more artificial assemblage. Such theoretically is the
principle, if the traditional view of the primitive state of
things may be called a theory. But much of the territory of the
larger tribes hag been permanently assigned to Chiefly families
or to smaller sub-divisions of tribesmen, and the land of the
smaller sub-divisions tends ever to become divided among their
members, subject to certain reserved rights of the collective
brotherhood. Every considerable tribe, and almost every smaller
body of men contained in it, is under a Chief, whether he be one
of the many tribal rulers whom the Irish records call Kings, or
whether he be one of those heads of joint-families whom the
Anglo-Irish lawyers at a later date called the Capita
Cognationum. But he is not owner of the tribal laid. his own land
he may have, consisting of private estate or of official domain,
or of both, and over the general tribal land he has a general
administrative authority, which is ever growing greater over that
portion of it which is unappropriated waste. He is meanwhile the
military leader of his tribesmen, and, probably in that capacity,
he has acquired great wealth in cattle. It has somehow become of
great importance to him to place out portions of his herds among
the tribesmen, and they on their part occasionally find
themselves through stress of circumstance in pressing need of
cattle for employment in tillage. Thus the Chiefs appear in the
Brehon law as perpetually 'giving stock,' and the tribesmen as
receiving it. The remarkable thing is, that out of this practice
grew, not only the familiar incidents of ownership, such as the
right to rent and the liability to pay it, together with some
other incidents less pleasantly familiar to the student of Irish
history, but, above and besides these, newly all the well-known
incidents of feudal tenure. It is by taking stock that the free
Irish tribesman becomes the Ceile or Kyle, the vassal or man of
his Chief, owing him not only rent but service and homage. The
exact effects of 'commendation' are thus produced, and the
interesting circumstance is that they are produced from a simple
and intelligible motive. The transaction between Chief and Vassal
is very burdensome to the latter, but the necessity which leads
to it is pressing, and the force of this necessity would be
greater the more primitive the society in which it arose, and the
more recent its settlement on its lands. All this is especially
instructive, because there is no reason whatever to suppose that
Beneficiary grants and Commendation arose suddenly in the world
at the disruption of the Roman Empire. They were probably, in
some form or other, deeply seated among the rudimentary usages of
all Aryan societies.
The new position which the tribesman assumed through
accepting stock from a Chief varied according to the quantity of
stock he received. If he took much stock he sank to a much lower
status than if he had taken little. On this difference in the
quantity accepted there turns the difference between the two
great classes of Irish tenantry, the Saer and Daer tenants,
between whose status and that of the free and higher base tenants
of an English manor there is a resemblance not to be mistaken.
The Saer-stock tenant, distinguished by the limited amount of
stock which he received from the Chief, remained a freeman and
retained his tribal rights in their integrity. The normal period
of his tenancy was seven years, and at the end of it he became en
titled to the cattle which had been in his possession. Meantime
he had the advantage of employing them in tillage, and the Chief
on his part received the 'growth and increase and milk,' the
first two words implying the young and the manure. So far there
is nothing very remarkable in the arrangement, but it is
expressly laid down that besides this it entitled the Chief to
receive homage and manual labour; manual labour is explained to
mean the service of the vassal in reaping the Chief's harvest and
in assisting to build his castle or fort, and it is stated that,
in lieu of manual labour, the vassal might be required to follow
his Chief to the wars. Any large addition to the stock deposited
with the Saer-stock tenant, or an unusual quantity accepted in
the first instance by the tribesman, created the relation between
vassal and chief called Daer-stock tenancy. The Daer-stock tenant
had unquestionably parted with some portion of his freedom, and
his duties are invariably referred to as very onerous. The stock
given to him by the Chief consisted of two portions, of which one
was proportionate to the rank of the recipient, the other to the
rent in kind to which the tenant became liable. The technical
standard of the first was the tenant's 'honor-price,' the fine or
damage which was payable for injuring him, and which in these
ancient systems of law varies with the dignity of the person
injured. The relation between the second portion of stock and the
rent is elaborately defined in the Brehon law: 'The proportionate
stock of a calf of the value of a sack with its accompaniments,
and refections for three persons in the summer, and work for
three days, is three "samhaisc" heifers or their value'
('Cain-Aigillne,' p. 25); or, in other words, that the Chief may
entitle himself to the calf, the refections, and the labour, he
must deposit three heifers with the tenant. 'The proportionate
stock of a "dartadh " heifer with its accompaniment, is twelve
"seds,"' explained to mean twelve 'samhaisc' heifers, or six
cows. And so on in many places. The rent in kind, or food-rent,
which was thus proportioned to the stock received, unquestionably
developed in time in to a rent payable in respect of the tenant's
land; but it is certainly a curious and unexpected fact that the
rent of the class which is believed to have embraced a very large
part of the ancient Irish tenantry did not, in its earliest form,
correspond in any way to the value of the tenant's land, but
solely to the value of the Chief's property deposited with the
tenant. But the most burdensome obligation imposed on the
Daerstock tenant is that which, in the quotation just made by me,
is expressed by the word 'refections.' Beside the rent in kind
and the feudal services, the Chief who had given stock was
entitled to come, with a company of a certain number, and feast
at the Dear stock tenant's house, at particular periods, for a
fixed number of days. This 'right of refection,' and liability to
it, are among the most distinctive features of ancient Irish
custom, and their origin is probably to be explained by the
circumstance that the Irish Chief, though far more privileged
than his tenants, was little better housed and almost as poorly
furnished out, and could not have managed to consume at home the
provisions to which his gifts of stock entitled him. But the
practice had a most unhappy history. The Brehon law defines it
and limits it narrowly on all sides; but its inconvenience and
its tendency to degenerate into an abuse are manifest, and from
it are doubtless descended those oppressions which revolted such
English observers of Ireland as Spenser and Davis, the 'coin and
livery,' and the 'cosherings' of the Irish Chiefs, which they
denounce with such indignant emphasis. Perhaps there was no Irish
usage which seemed to Englishmen so amply to justify that which
as a whole I believe to have been a great mistake and a great
wrong, the entire judicial or legislative abolition of Irish
customs. The precautions by which the Brehon lawyers could fence
it in were not probably at any time very effectual, but, as I
before stated, they did what they could; and, moreover, as
defined by them, the relation out of which Daer-stock tenancy and
its peculiar obligations arose was not perpetual. After food-rent
and service had been rendered for seven years, if the Chief died,
the tenant became entitled to the stock; while, on the other
hand, if the tenant died, his heirs were partly, though not
wholly, relieved from their obligation. At the same time it is
very probable that Daer-stock tenancy, which must have begun in
the necessities of the tenant, was often from the same cause
rendered practically permanent.
It has frequently been conjectured that certain incidents of
feudal tenure pointed back to some such system as the Brehon
tracts describe to us. The Heriot of English Copyhold tenure, the
'best beast' taken by the Lord on the death of a base tenant, has
been explained as an acknowledgment of the Lord's ownership of
the cattle with which he anciently stocked the land of his
villeins, just as the Heriot of the military tenant is believed
to have had its origin in a deposit of arms. Adam Smith
recognised the great antiquity of the Metayer tenancy, still
widely spread over the Continent, of which one variety was in his
day found in Scotland under the name of 'steelbow.' I am not at
all surprised that, in one of the Prefaces to the official
translation of the Brehon laws, a comparison should be instituted
between this tenancy and the Saer and Daer-stock tenancy of
ancient Irish law. The outward resemblance is considerable, and
the history of Metayer tenancy is so obscure that I certainly
cannot undertake to say that practices answering to those I have
described had not in some countries something to do with its
primitive form. But the distinctions between the ancient and the
modern tenancies are more important than the analogies. In
Metayer tenancy a landlord supplies the land and stock, a tenant
the labour only and the skill; but in Saer and Daer-stock tenancy
the land belonged to the tenant. Again, the effect of the ancient
Irish relation was to produce, not merely a contractual
liability, but a status. The tenant had his social and tribal
position distinctly altered by accepting stock. Further, the
acceptance of stock was not always voluntary. A tribesman, in one
stage of Irish custom at all events, was bound to receive stock
from his own 'King,' or, in other words, from the Chief of his
tribe in its largest extension; and everywhere the Brehon laws
seem to me to speak of the acceptance of stock as a hard
necessity. Lastly, the Tribe to which the intending tenant
belonged had in some cases a Veto on his adoption of the new
position, which was clearly regarded as a proceeding invasive of
tribal rights and calculated to enfeeble them. In order to give
the Tribe the opportunity of interposing whenever it had legal
power to do so, the acceptance of stock had to be open and
public, and the consequences of effecting it surreptitiously are
elaborately set forth by the law. It seems to me clear that it
was discouraged by the current popular morality. One of those
rules, frequent in ancient bodies of law, which are rather moral
precepts than juridical provisions, declares that 'no man should
leave a rent on his land which he did not find there.'
The system which I have been describing must have contributed
powerfully to dissolve the more ancient tribal and family
organisation. If the Chief who gave and the Ceile who accepted
stock belonged to the same Tribe, the effect of the transaction
was to create a relation between them, not indeed altogether
unlike that of tribal connection, but still materially different
from it in many respects and much more to the advantage of the
chieftain. But the superior from whom a man took stock was not
always the Chief of his own Sept or Tribe. So far as the Brehon
law can be said to show any favour to the new system of
vassalage, it encourages it between natural chief and natural
tribesman; and, on the other hand, it puts difficulties in its
way when there is an attempt to establish it between a tribesman
and a strange Chief. But there seem to be abundant admissions
that freemen did occasionally commend themselves in this way to
superiors other than their Chiefs. avery nobleman, as I said
before, is assumed to be as a rule rich in cattle, and it appears
to have been an object with everyone to disperse his herds by the
practice of giving stock. The enriched peasant who was on his way
to be ennobled, the Bo-Aire, seems to have had Ceiles who
accepted stock from him, as well as had the nobles higher in
degree. Accordingly, the new groups formed of the Lord and his
Vassals -- if we may somewhat antedate these last words -- were
sometimes wholly distinct from the old groups composed of the
Chief and his Clan. Nor, again, was the new relation confined to
Aires, or noblemen, and Ceiles, or free but non-noble tribesmen.
The Bo-Aire certainly, and apparently the higher Chiefs also,
accepted stock on occasion from chieftains more exalted than
themselves; and in the end to 'give stock' came to mean the same
thing as to assert feudal superiority, and to 'accept stock' the
same thing, which in the language of other societies was called
'commendation.' It is strong evidence of the soundness of the
conclusions reached of late years by historical scholars (and,
among others, by Mr Bryce), as to the deep and wide influence
exercised by the Roman Empire, even in its later form, that (of
course by a fiction) the Brehon law represents the King of
Ireland as 'accepting stock' from the Emperor. 'When the King of
Erin is without opposition' -- that is, as the explanation runs,
when he holds the ports of Dublin, Waterford, and Limerick, which
were usually in the hands of the Danes -- 'he receives stock from
the King of the Romans' (S. M., ii. 225). The commentary goes on
to say that sometimes' it is by the successor of Patrick that the
stock is given to the King of Erin; 'and this remarkable passage
seems to show that an Irish writer spoke of the successor of St
Patrick, where a writer of the same approximate period in England
or on the European Continent would assuredly have spoken of the
Pope.
I hope it is unnecessary for me to insist on the interest
which attaches to this part of the Brehon law, it has been not
uncommon, upon the evidence furnished by the usages of the
Scottish Highlanders, sharply to contrast Celtic tribal customs
with feudal rules; and doubtless between these customs and
feudalism in its perfected state there are differences of the
greatest importance. Yet, if the testimony of the Brehon tracts
may be trusted, such differences arose, not from essential
distinctions, but, in some measure at all events, from
distinctions of degree in comparative social development. The
germs of feudalism lay deep in the more ancient social forms, and
were ready to assert their vitality even in a country like
Ireland, which, after it was once Christianised, can have
borrowed next to no institutions from its neighbours, cut off as
it was from the Continent by distance, and from England by
stubborn national repulsion. It is also worthy of observation
that this natural growth of feudalism was not, as some eminent
recent writers have supposed, entirely distinct from the process
by which the authority of the Chief or Lord over the Tribe or
Village was extended, but rather formed part of it. While the
unappropriated waste-lands were falling into his domain, the
villagers or tribesmen were coming through natural agencies under
his personal power.
The Irish practice of 'giving stock' seems to me also to
connect itself with another set of phenomena which have generally
been thought to belong to a very different stage of history. We
obtain from the law-tracts a picture of an aristocracy of wealth
in its most primitive form; and we see that the possession of
this wealth gave the nobles an immense power over the non-noble
freemen who had nothing but their land. Caesar seems to me to be
clearly referring to the same state of relations in the Celtic
sister society, when he speaks of the Gaulish chiefs, the
Equites, having one principal source of their influence in the
number of their debtors. (B. G., i. 4; B. G., vi. 13.) Now, you
will remember how uniformly, when our knowledge of the ancient
world commences, we find plebeian classes deeply indebted to
aristocratic orders. At the beginning of Athenian history we find
the Athenian commonalty the bondslaves through debt of the
Eupatrids; at the beginning of Roman history we find the Roman
Commons in money bondage to the Patricians. The fact has been
accounted for in many ways, and it has been plausibly suggested
that it was the occurrence of repeated bad seasons which placed
the small farmers of the Attic and Roman territory at the mercy
of wealthy nobles. But the explanation is imperfect unless we
keep in mind the chief lesson of these Brehon tracts, and
recollect that the relative importance of Land and Capital has
been altering throughout history. The general proposition that
Land is limited in quantity and is distinguished by this
limitation from all other commodities which are practically
capable of indefinite multiplication, has always of course been
abstractedly true; but, like many other principles of Political
Economy, its value depends on the circumstances to which it is
applied. In very ancient times land was a drug, while capital was
extremely perishable, added to with the greatest difficulty, and
lodged in very few hands. The proportionate importance of the two
requisites of cultivation changed very slowly, and it is only
quite recently that in some countries it has been well-nigh
reversed. The ownership of the instruments of tillage other than
the land itself was thus, in early agricultural communities, a
power of the first order, and, as it may be believed that a stock
of the primitive capital larger than usual was very generally
obtained by plunder, we can understand that these stocks were
mostly in the hands of noble classes whose occupation was war,
and who at all events had a monopoly of the profits of office.
The advance of capital at usurious interest, and the helpless
degradation of the borrowers, were the natural results of such
economical conditions. For the honour of the obscure and
forgotten Brehon writers of the Cain-Saerrath and the
Cain-Aigillne, let it not be forgotten that their undertaking was
essentially the same as that which went far to immortalise one
great Athenian legislator. By their precise and detailed
statements of the proportion which is to be preserved between the
stock which the Chief supplies and the returns which the tenant
pays, they plainly intend to introduce certainty and equity into
a naturally oppressive system. Solon, dealing with a state of
society in which coined money had probably not long taken the
place of something like the 'seds' of the Brehon law, had no
expedient open to him but the debasement of the currency and the
cancellation of debts; but he was attacking the same evil as the
Brehon lawyers, and equally interfering with that freedom of
contract which wears a very different aspect according to the
condition of the society in which it prevails.
The great part played in the Brehon law by Cattle as the
oldest form of Capital ought further to leave no doubt of the
original objects of the system of 'eric'-fines, or pecuniary
composition for violent crime. As I said before, no Irish
institution was so strongly denounced by Englishmen as this, or
with so great a show of righteous indignation. As members of a
wealthy community, long accustomed to a strong government, they
were revolted partly by its apparent inadequacy and partly the
unjust impunity which it seemed to give to the rich man and to
deny to the poor. Although the English system of criminal
penalties which they sought to substitute for the Irish system of
compositions would nowadays be described by an ordinary writer in
pretty much as dark colours as those used by Spenser and Davis
for the Irish institution, it is very possible that in the
sixteenth century it would have been an advantage to Ireland to
have the English procedure and the English punishments. There is
much evidence that the usefulness of 'eric'-fines had died out,
and that they unjustly profited the rich and powerful. But that
only shows that the confusions of Ireland had kept alive beyond
its time an institution which in the beginning had been a great
step forwards from barbarism. If the modern writers who have
spoken harshly of these pecuniary compositions had come upon a
set of usages belonging to a society in which tribe was
perpetually struggling with tribe, and in which life was held
extraordinarily cheap, and had found that, by this customary law,
the sept or family to which the perpetrator of a crime belonged
forfeited a considerable portion of its lauds, I am not sure that
they would not have regarded the institution as showing for the
age an extremely strict police. But in the infancy of society a
fine on the cultivating communities, of the kind afterwards
called pecuniary, was a much severer punishment than the
forfeiture of land. They had plenty of land within their domains,
but very slight appliances for cultivating it; and it was out of
these last that compositions were paid. The system of course lost
its meaning as the communities broke up and as property became
unequally divided. In its day, nevertheless, it had been a great
achievement, and there are traces of it everywhere, even in Roman
law, where, however, it is a mere survival.
Before I quit the subject let me say something on the
etymology of the famous word, Feodum, Feud, or Fief. The
derivation from Emphyteusis is now altogether abandoned, and
there is general, though not quite universal, agreement that
Feodum is descended from one or other of the numerous family of
old Teutonic terms which have their present representative in the
modern German Vieh, 'cattle.' There is supposed to have been much
the same transmutation of meaning which occurred with the
analogous Latin word. Pecunia, allied to pecus, signified first
money, and then property generally; the Roman lawyers, in fact,
tell us that it is the most comprehensive term for all a man's
property,' and in the same way 'feodum' is supposed to have come
to mean 'property,' from having originally meant 'cattle.' The
investigations we have been pursuing may perhaps, however,
suggest that the connection of 'feodum' with cattle is closer and
more direct than this theory assumes. Dr Sullivan, I ought to
add, assigns a different origin to 'feodum' from any hitherto put
forward (Introd. p. ccxxvi). He claims it as a Celtic word, and
connects it with fuidhir, the name of a class of denizens on
tribal territory whose status I am about to discuss.
The territory of every Irish tribe appears to have had
settled on it, besides the Saer and Daer Ceiles, certain classes
of persons whose condition was much newer to slavery than that of
the free tribesman who, by accepting stock from the Chief, had
sunk lowest from his original position in the tribal society.
They are called by various names, Sencleithes, Bothachs, and
Fuidhirs; and the two last classes are again subdivided, like the
Ceiles, into Saer and Daer Bothachs, and Saer and Daer Fuidhirs.
There is evidence in the tracts, and especially in the
unpublished tract called the 'Corus Fine,' that the servile
dependants, like the freemen of the territory, had a family or
tribal organisation; and indeed all fragments of a society like
that of ancient Ireland take more or less the shape of the
prevailing model. The position of the classes, obscurely
indicated in Domesday and other ancient English records as Cotwii
and Bordarii, was probably very similar to that of the
Sencleithes and Bothachs; and in both cases it has been suspected
that these servile orders had an origin distinct from that of the
dominant race, and belonged to the older or aboriginal
inhabitants of the country. Families or sub-tribes formed out of
them were probably hewers of wood and drawers of water to the
ruling tribe or its subdivisions. Others were certainly in a
condition of special servitude to the Chief or dependence on him;
and these last were either engaged in cultivating his immediate
domain-land and herding his cattle, or were planted by him in
separate settlements on the waste land of the tribe. The rent or
service which they paid to him for the use of this land was
apparently determinable solely by the pleasure of the Chief.
Much the most important, and much the most interesting of
these classes from the historical point of view, was that just
described as settled by the Chief on the unappropriated tribal
lands. Indeed, it has been suggested that its fortunes are
identical with those of the great bulk of the Irish people. It
consisted of the Fuidhirs, the strangers or fugitives from other
territories, men, in fact, who had broken the original tribal
bond which gave them a place in the community, and who had to
obtain another as best they might in a new tribe and a new place.
The Brehon law shows by abundant evidence that the class must
have been a numerous one. The desertion of their lands by
families or portions of families is repeatedly spoken of. Under
certain circumstances, indeed, the rupture of the tribal bond and
the flight of those who break it are eventualities distinctly
contemplated by the law. In the Brehon law, as in other ancient
juridical systems, the corporate responsibility of tribes,
sub-tribes, and families takes the place of that responsibility
for crime, and even to some extent of civil obligation, which,
under modern institutions, presses upon the individual. But the
responsibility might be prevented from attaching by compelling or
inducing a member of the group, habitually violent or vowed to
revenge, to withdraw from its circle; and the Book of Aicill
gives the legal procedure which is to be observed in the
expulsion, the tribe paying certain fines to the Chief and the
Church and proclaiming the fugitive. Such provisions assume a
certain order in the society to which they apply; yet we know as
a fact that for many centuries it was violently disordered. The
result was probably to fill the country with 'broken men,' and
such men could only find a home and protection by becoming
Fuidhir tenants. Everything, in short, which tended to disturb
the Ireland of the Brehon laws tended to multiply this particular
class.
Now, the Fuidhir tenant was exclusively a dependant of the
Chief, and waS through him alone connected with the Tribe. The
responsibility for crime, which in the natural state of Irish
society attached to the Family or Tribe, attached, in the case of
the Fuidhir, to the Chief, who in fact became to this class of
tenants that which their original tribesmen or kindred had been.
Moreover, the land which they cultivated in their place of refuge
was not theirs but his. They were the first 'tenants at will,
known to Ireland, and there is no doubt that they were always
theoretically rackrentable. The 'three rents,' says the Senchus
Mor, are the 'rackrent from a person of a strange tribe, a fair
rent from one of the tribe, and the stipulated rent which is paid
equally by the tribe and the strange tribe.' The 'person from a
strange tribe' is undoubtedly the Fuidhir; and though the Irish
expression translated 'rackrent' cannot, of course, in the
ancient state of relation between population and land, denote an
extreme competition rent, it certainty indicates an extreme rent;
since in one of the glosses it is graphically compared to the
milk of a cow which is compelled to give milk every month to the
end of the year, At the same time there is no reason to suppose
that, in the first instance, the Fuidhir tenants were
oppressively treated by the Chiefs. The Chief had a strong
interest in encouraging them; 'he brings in Fuidhirs,' says one
of the tracts, to increase his wealth.' The interests really
injured were those of the Tribe, which may have become stronger
for defence or attack by the addition to the population of the
territory, but which certainly suffered as a body of joint
proprietors by the curtailment of the waste land available for
pasture. The process before described by which the status of the
tribesmen declined proportionately to the growth of the Chiefs'
powers, must have been indirectly hastened in several ways by the
introduction of Fuidhirs. Such indications of the course of
change as the Brehon laws furnish are curiously in harmony with a
passage from a work recently published, which, amid much other
valuable matter, gives a most vivid picture of agricultural life
in the backward Indian province of Orissa. Mr Hunter, the writer,
is speaking of the relation of landlord and tenant; but as the
'hereditary peasantry' referred to have, as against their
landlord, rights defined by law, they are not without analogy to
the tribesmen of an ancient Irish territory. 'The migratory
husbandman,' the Fuidhir of modern India, 'not only lost his
hereditary position in his own village, but he was an object of
dislike and suspicion among the new community into which he
thrust himself. For every accession of cultivators tended to
better the position of the landlord, and pro tanto to injure that
of the (older) cultivators. So long as the land on an estate
continued to be twice as much as the hereditary peasantry could
till, the resident husbandmen were of too much importance to be
bullied or squeezed into discontent. But once a large body of
immigrant cultivators had grown up, this primitive check on the
landlords' exactions was removed. The migratory tenants,
therefore, not only lost their position in their old villages,
but they were harassed in their new settlements. Worse than all,
they were to a certain extent confounded with the landless low
castes who, destitute of the local connections so keenly prized
in rural society as the evidences of respectability, wandered
about as hired labourers and temporary cultivators of surplus
village lands.' (Hunter, 'Orissa,' i. 57, 58)
You will perhaps have divined the ground of the special
attention which has been claimed for these Fuidhir tenants, and
will be prepared to hear that their peculiar status has been
supposed to have a bearing on those agrarian difficulties which
have recurred with almost mysterious frequency in the history of
Ireland. It is certainly a striking circumstance that in the far
distance of Irish tradition we come upon conflicts between
rent-paying and rent-receiving tribes -- that, at the first
moment when our information respecting Ireland becomes full and
trustworthy, our informants dwell with indignant emphasis on the
'racking' of tenants by the Irish Chiefs -- and that the relation
of Irish landlord and Irish tenant, after being recognised ever
since the beginning of the century as a social difficulty of the
first magnitude, finally became a political difficulty , which
was settled only the other day. I do not say that there is not a
thread of connection between these stages of Irish agrarian
history, but there are two opposite errors into which we may be
betrayed if we assume the thread to have been uniform throughout.
In the first place, we may be tempted to antedate the influence
of those economical laws which latterly had such powerful
operation in Ireland until their energy was well-nigh spent
through the consequences of the great famine of 1845-6. An
overflowing population and a limited area of cultivable land had
much to do, and probably more than anything else to do, with the
condition of Ireland during that period; but neither the one nor
the other was a characteristic of the country at the end of the
sixteenth century. Next, we may perhaps be inclined, as some
writers of great merit seem to me to be, to post-date the social
changes which caused so large a portion of the soil of Ireland to
be placed under the uncontrolled Law of the Market, or, to adopt
the ordinary phraseology, which multiplied 'tenants at will' to
an unusual extent. Doubtless, if we had to found an opinion as to
these causes exclusively on ancient Irish law, and on modern
English real property law, we should perhaps come to the
conclusion that an archaic system, barely recognising absolute
ownership, had been violently and unnaturally replaced by a
system of far more modern stamp based upon absolute property in
land. But, by the end of the sixteenth century, our evidence is
that the Chiefs had already so much power over their tenants that
any addition to it is scarcely conceivable. 'The Lords of land,'
says Edmund Spenser, writing not later than 1596, 'do not there
use to set out their land to farme, for tearme of years, to their
tenants, but only from yeare to yeare, or during pleasure,
neither indeed will the Irish tenant or husbandman otherwise take
his land than so long as he list himselfe. The reason thereof in
the tenant is, for that the landlords there use most shamefully
to racke their tenants, laying upon them coin and livery at
pleasure, and exacting of them besides his covenants what he
pleaseth. So that the poore husbandman either dare not binde
himselfe to him for longer tearme, or thinketh, by his continuall
liberty of change, to keepe his landlord the rather in awe from
wronging of him. And the reason why the landlord will no longer
covenant with him is, for that he dayly looketh after change and
alteration, and hovereth in expectation of new worlds.' Sir John
Davis, writing rather before 1613, used still stronger language:
'The Lord is an absolute Tyrant and the Tennant a very slave and
villain, and in one respect more miserable than Bond Slaves. For
commonly the Bond Slave is fed by his Lord, but here the Lord is
fed by his Bond Slave.'
There is very little in common bet ween the miserable
position of the Irish tenant here described and the footing of
even the baser sort of Ceiles, or villeins, who had taken stock
from the Chief. If the Brehon law is to be trusted, the Daer
Ceile was to be commiserated, rather because he had derogated
from his rights as a free tribesman of the same blood with the
Chief, than because he had exposed himself to unbridled
oppression. Besides paying dues more of the nature of modern
rent, he certainly stood under that unfortunate liability of
supplying periodical refection for his Chief and his followers.
But not only was the Mount of his dues settled by the law, but
the very size of the joints and the quality of the ale with which
he regaled his Chief were minutely and expressly regulated. And,
if one provision of the law is clearer than another, it is that
the normal period of the relation of tenancy or vassalage was not
one year, but seven years. How, then, are we to explain this
discrepancy ? Is the explanation that the Brehon theory never in
reality quite corresponded with the facts ? It may be so to some
extent, but the careful student of the Brehon tracts will be
inclined to think that the general bias of their writers was
rather towards exaggeration of the privileges of Chiefs than
towards Overstatement of the immunities of tribesmen. Is it, on
the other hand, likely that, as some patriotic Irishmen have
asserted, Spenser and Davis were under the influence of English
prejudice, and grossly misrepresented the facts of Irish life in
their day? Plenty of prejudice of a certain kind is disclosed by
their writings, and I doubt not that they were capable of
occasionally misunderstanding what they saw. Nothing, however,
which they have written suggests that they were likely wilfully
to misdescribe facts open to their observation. I can quite
conceive that some things in the relations of the Chiefs and
tenants escaped them, possibly a good deal of freely-given
loyalty on one side, and of kindliness and good humoured
joviality on the other. But that the Irish Chief had in their day
the power or right which they attribute to him cannot seriously
be questioned.
The power of the Irish Chiefs and their severity to their
tenants in the sixteenth century being admitted, they have been
accounted for, as I before stated, by supposing that the Norman
nobles who became gradually clothed with Irish chieftainships --
the Fitzgeralds, the Burkes, and the Barrys -- abused an
authority which in native hands would have been subject to
natural limitations, and thus set an evil example to all the
Chiefs of Ireland. The explanation has not the antecedent
improbability which it might seem to have at first sight, but I
am not aware that there is positive evidence to sustain it. I owe
a far more plausible theory of the cause of change to Dr
Sullivan, who, in his Introduction (p. cxxvi), has suggested that
it was determined by the steady multiplication of Fuidhir
tenants. It must be recollected that this class of persons would
not be protected by the primitive or natural institutions
springing out of community of blood. The Fuidhir was not a
tribesman but an alien. In all societies cemented together by
kinship the position of the person who has lost or broken the
bond of union is always extraordinarily miserable. He has not
only lost his natural place in them, but they have no room for
him anywhere else. The wretchedness of the outcast in India,
understood as the man who has lost or been expelled from caste,
does not arise from his having been degraded from a higher to a
lower social standing, but from his having no standing whatever,
there being no other order of society open to receive him when he
has descended from his own. It was true that the Fuidhir, though
he had lost the manifold protection of his family and tribe, was
not actually exposed to violent wrong. From that he was protected
by the new Chief to whom he had attached himself, but between him
and this Chief there was nothing. The principle would always be
that he was at the mercy of the Chief. At the utmost, some usages
favourable to him might establish themselves through lapse of
time, but they would have none of the obligatory force belonging
to the rules which defined the rights of the Chief in respect of
his Saer-stock and Daerstock tenants. We can see that several of
the duties corresponding to these rights were of a kind to invite
abuse; much more certainly would obligations analogous to them,
but wholly imposed by the pleasure of the Chief, become cruelly
oppressive. The 'refections' of the Brehon law would, by a
miserable degradation, become (to borrow the language of Spenser
and Davis) coin and livery, cuttings, cosherings, and spendings,
in the case of the Fuidhirs. Meanwhile there were causes at work,
powerfully and for long periods of time, to increase the numbers
of this class. Even those Irishmen who believe that in the
distant past there was once a tolerably well-ordered Ireland
admit that for many centuries their country was racked with
perpetual disturbance. Danish piracies, intestine feuds,
Anglo-Norman attempts at conquest never consistently carried out
or thoroughly completed, the very existence of the Pale, and
above all the policy directed from it of playing off against one
another the Chiefs beyond its borders, are allowed by all to have
distracted the island with civil war, how ever the responsibility
for it is to be apportioned. But the process is one which must
have broken up tribes far and wide, and broken tribes imply a
multitude of broken men. Even in brief intervals of peace the
violent habits produced by constant disorder would bring about
the frequent expulsion by families of members for whom they
refused to remain responsible, and in the commoner eventuality of
war whole fragments would be from time to time torn away from
tribes and their atoms scattered in every part of Ireland. it is
therefore, a conjecture possessing a very high degree of
plausibility, that the tenantry of the Irish Chiefs whose
sufferings provoked the indignation of Spenser and Davis
consisted largely of Fuidhirs.
The explanation may, however, be carried beyond this point.
You will bear in mind the passage quoted by me from Hunter's
'Orissa,' which shows how a tenantry enjoying hereditary rights
is injured, even under a Government which sternly compels peace
and order, by a large immigration of cultivators dependent on the
landlord or Zemnindar. They narrow the available waste land by
their appropriations; and, though they do not compete directly
for the anciently cultivated land with the tenants enjoying
hereditary rights, they greatly raise in the long run the
standard of rent, at the same time that they arm the landlord
with those powers of exacting it which in ancient Ireland
consisted in the strong hand of the Chief himself, and which
consist, in modern India, in the money which puts in motion the
arm of the law. I have no doubt whatever that a great
multiplication of Fuidhir tenants would always seriously alter
for the worse the position of the tenants by Saer-stock and I
Dear-stock tenure.
'Before the establishment of the (English) common law, all
the possessions within the Irish territories ran either in course
of Tanistry or in course of Gavelkind. Every Signory or Chiefry
with the portion of land which passed with it went without
partition to the Tanist, who always came in by election or with
the strong hand, and not by descent; but all inferior tenanties
were partible between males in Gavelkind.' (Sir J. Davis'
Reports, 'Le Cas de Gavelkind,' Hil. 3, Jac. 1, before all the
Judges.)
This passage occurs in one of the famous cases in which the
Anglo-Irish Judges affirmed the illegality of the native Irish
tenures of land. They declared the English common law to be in
force in Ireland, and thenceforward the eldest son succeeded, as
heir-at-law, both to lands which were attached to a Signory and
to estates which had been divided according to the peculiar Irish
custom here called Gavelkind. The Judges thoroughly knew that
they were making a revolution, and they probably thought that
they were substituting a civilised institution for a set of
mischievous usages proper only for barbarians. Yet there is
strong reason for thinking that Tanistry is the form of
succession from which Primogeniture descended, and that the Irish
Gavelkind, which they sharply distinguished from the Gavelkind of
Kent, was nothing more than an archaic form of this same
institution, of which Courts in England have always taken
judicial notice, and which prevailed far more widely on the
European Continent than succession by Primogeniture.
It will be convenient that we should first consider the
so-called Gavelkind of Ireland, which is thus described by Sir
John Davis: 'By the Irish custom of Gavelkind, the inferior
tenanties were partible among all the males of the Sept, both
Bastards and Legitimate; and, after partition made, if any one of
the Sept had died, his portion was not divided among his sonnes,
but the Chief of the Sept made a new partition of all the lands
belonging to that Sept, and gave every one his part according to
his antiquity.'
This statement occasions some perplexity, which does not,
however, arise from its being antecedently incredible. It is
made, you will observe, not of the Clan or Tribe in its largest
extension, but of the Sept. The first was a large and
miscellaneous body, composed in great part of men whose
relationship of blood with the Chief and the mass of free
tribesmen, was a mere fiction. The last was a much smaller body,
whose proximity to a common ancestor was close enough to admit of
their kinship either being a fact or being believed to be a fact.
It apparently corresponded to the small Highland communities
observed in Scotland, by an English officer of Engineers about
1730. 'They (the Highlanders) are divided into tribes or clans
under chiefs or chieftains, and each clan is again divided into
branches from the main stock, who have chieftains over them.
These are Subdivided into smaller branches, of fifty or sixty
men, who deduce their original from their particular chieftains.
(Quoted by Skene, 'Highlanders,' i. p. 156.) Such a body, as I
have already stated, seems to be the Joint Family well known to
the Hindoos, but continued as a corporate unit (which is very
rarely the case in India), through several successive
generations. There is no difference in principle, and little in
practical effect, between the mode of succession described by
Davis and the way in which a Hindoo Joint Family is affected by
the death of one of its members. All the property being held in
common, and all earnings being brought into the 'common chest or
purse,' the lapse of any one life would have the effect,
potentially if not actually, of distributing the dead man's share
among all the kindred united in the family group. And if, on a
dissolution of the Joint Family, the distribution of its effects
were not per capita but per stirpes, this would correspond to
what Davis probably means when he describes the Chief as giving
to each man 'according to his antiquity.'
The special novelty of the information supplied to us by the
ancient Irish law consists in its revealing to us a society of
Aryan race, settled, indeed, on the land, and much influenced by
its settlement, but preserving an exceptional number of the ideas
and rules belonging to the time when kinship and not the land is
the basis of social union. There is, therefore, nothing
extraordinary in our finding, among the ancient usages of the
Irish, an institution savouring so much of the 'natural
communism' of the primitive forms of property as this Irish
Gavelkind. This 'natural communism,' I have repeatedly urged,
does not arise from any theory or à priori assumption as to the
best or justest mode of dividing the land of a community, but
from the simple impossibility, according to primitive notions, of
making a distinction between a number of kinsmen solely connected
by their real or assumed descent from a common ancestor. The
natural solvent of this communism is the land itself upon which
the kindred are settled. As the common ancestry fades away into
indistinctness, and the community gets to consider itself less an
assemblage of blood-relations than a body of co-villagers, each
household clings with increasing tenacity to the allotment which
it has once obtained, and re-divisions of the land among the
whole community, whether at fixed periods or at a death, become
rarer and rarer, and at last cease altogether, or survive only as
a tradition. In this way the widely diffused but modified form of
tribal succession, which in England is called Gavelkind, is at
last established; the descendants of the latest holder take his
property, to the exclusion of everybody else, and the rights of
the portion of the community outside the family dwindle to a veto
on sales, or to a right of controlling the modes of cultivation.
Nevertheless, surveying the Aryan world as a whole, and looking
to societies in which some fragments of the ancient social
organisation still survive, we can discover forms of succession
or property which come surprisingly near to the Irish Gavelkind
described by Davis. The best example of this occurs in a practice
which existed down to our own day over a large part of Russia.
The principle was that each household of the village was entitled
to a share of the village-lands proportioned to the number of
adult males it contained. Every death, therefore, of a grown-up
man diminished pro tanto the share of the household, and every
member of it grown to manhood increased its lot in the cultivated
area. There was a fixed unit of acreage corresponding to the
extent of soil cultivable by one man's labour, and at the
periodical division each household obtained just as much land as
answered to its number of adult labouring men. The principal
distinction between this system and that which seemed so
monstrous and unnatural to Sir John Davis is, that under the
first the re-division took place, not as each death occurred, but
at stated intervals. I must not, indeed, be understood to say
that I think the distinction unimportant. It is very possible
that re-distributions at deaths of a common fund may mark a more
advanced stage in the history of Property than periodical
redistribution, and that the recognition of interests for an
entire life may have preceded and paved the way for the final
allotment of permanent shares to separate households. Until,
however, this last point has been reached, all the modes of
re-division known to us are plainly referable to the same
principle.
The difficulty suggested by the recital in the 'Case of
Gavelkind' is thus not a difficulty in believing it if it stood
by itself, or if it were made with less generality. But it is
distinctly stated that all the lands in Ireland which did not
descend by the rule of Tanistry descended by the rule of
Gavelkind. The indications of the state of law or custom
furnished by the Brehon tracts certainly seem to me inconsistent
with this assertion. They show us proprietary rights defined with
a sharpness and guarded with a jealousy which is hard to
reconcile with the degree of 'natural communism' implied in the
language of Davis's Report. The Corus Bescna, of which I said
something before, and which deals with rights over tribal lands,
implies that under certain circumstances they might be
permanently alienated, at all events to the Church; and we shall
presently have to discuss, some very singular rules of
succession, which, however they may affect the Family, certainly
seem to exclude the Sept. Dr Sullivan, who appears to have
consulted many more original authorities than have been
translated or given to the world, expresses himself as if he
thought that the general law of succession in Ireland was newly
analogous to the Gavelkind of Kent. 'According to the Irish
custom, property descended at first only to the male heirs of the
body, each son receiving an equal share..... Ultimately, however,
daughters appear to have become entitled to inherit all, if there
were no sons' (Introd., p. clxx).
I do not expect that the apparent contradiction between the
Brehon tracts and the language of Davis and his contemporaries
respecting the Irish law of succession to land will be fully
accounted for till the whole of the ancient legal literature is
before the world; but meanwhile it is a plausible explanation of
the discrepancy that the Irish and the English writers attended
to different sets of phenomena. I cannot doubt that the so-called
Irish Gavelkind was found over a great part of the country. The
statements of English authorities on the point are extremely
precise. They affirm that 'no civil habitations were erected, and
no enclosure or improvement was made of land where Gavelkind was
in use,' and they say that this was especially the case in
Ulster, 'which was all one wilderness.' Nevertheless it is
extremely probable that another set of facts justified the
indications given by the Brehon tracts, and that there were other
modes of succession known besides succession by Tanistry on the
one hand, and besides on the other hand the peculiarly archaic
system under which each lapsed share was at once divided between
all the members of the Sept. Such an institution as the last,
though exceptional circumstances may keep it alive, contains
within itself a principle of decay. Each household included in
the Joint Family gains a firmer hold on its share of the lands as
the distance increases from the common ancestor; and finally
appropriates it, transmitting it exclusively to offshoots from
its own branch. Nothing is more likely than that there were
frequent examples of Irish septs with their land-customs in this
condition; and it is still more probable that usages of a
similarly modern stamp prevailed in estates permanently severed
or 'booked off' from tribal possession or established at a
distance from the main seat of the tribe. It is true that, in
society based on kinship, each family separated from the rest
tends itself to expand into a joint family or sept; but in these
severed estates custom would be apt to be enfeebled and to abate
something of its tyranny. Thus, putting the rule of Tanistry
aside, I can quite conceive that the Irish Gavelkind, the modern
Gavelkind known to Kent, and many forms of succession
intermediate between the two, co-existed in Ireland. Both the
English and the Irish authorities on law had prejudices of their
own which might lead them to confine their attention to
particular usages. The Brehon writers seem to me distinctly
biassed in favour of the descent of property in individual
families, which commended itself to them as lawyers, as friends
of the Church, and (it may be) as well-wishers to their country.
On the other, the strange ancient form of ownership which he
called Gavelkind would fascinate the observation of an Englishman
resident in Ireland. He would assuredly have none of the
curiosity about it which we feel nowadays, but surprise and
dislike would fix his attention upon it, and perhaps prevent his
recognising the comparatively wide diffusion of institutions of
the opposite type.
This interpretation of the seeming contradiction between our
authorities is consistent with the very little we know respecting
actual divisions of land in ancient Ireland. It constantly
happened both in Ireland and the Scottish Highlands that a Chief,
besides the domain which appertained to his office, had a great
estate held under what the English lawyers deemed the inferior
tenure. There are two cases on record in which Irish Chiefs of
considerable dignity distributed such estates among their
kindred. In the fourteenth century Connor More O'Brien, a chief
who had children of his own, is stated to have divided his land
on principles which must have more or less corresponded to those
condemned by the Anglo-Irish Judges. The bulk of the estate he
assigned to the various families of the Sept formed by his own
relatives. To himself he reserved only one-sixth of one-half of
one-third, and even this sixth he divided between his three sons,
reserving only a rent to himself. But at the end of the fifteenth
century Donogh O'Brien, son of Brien Duff, son of Connor, King of
Thomond, divided all his lands between his eleven sons, reserving
to himself only the mansion and the demesne in its vicinity. The
difference between the two cases, which (it is instructive to
observe) are separated by at least a century, appears to me
sufficiently plain. In the first the land had remained in a state
of indivision during several generations; in the second it had
been periodically divided. Connor More O'Brien was distributing
the inheritance of a joint family; Donogh O'Brien that of a
family (Vallancey, 'Collectanea de Rebus Hibernicis,' i 264,
265.)
It is worthy of observation that in the more ancient example
Connor More O'Brien appears to have paid regard to the various
stirpes or stocks into which the descendants of the orIginal
founder of his family had branched out. The principle he followed
I suppose to be the same as that pointed out by Davis when he
speaks of the chief dividing a lapsed share between the members
of a sept 'according to their antiquity.' The proceeding deserves
to be noted, as showing an advance on the oldest known tribal
customs. In the most archaic forms of the Joint Family, and of
the institution which grew out of it, the Village-Community,
these distributions are per capita; no one person who is entitled
takes more than another, whether the whole estate or a portion is
divided, and no respect is paid to the particular way in which a
given individual has descended from the common ancestor. Under a
more advanced system the distribution is per stirpes; careful
attention is paid to the lines into which the descendants of the
ancestor of the joint-family have separated, and separate rights
are reserved to them. Finally, the stocks themselves escape from
the sort of shell constituted by the Joint Family; each man's
share of the property, now periodically divided, is distributed
among his direct descendants at his death. At this point,
property in its modern form has been established; but the Joint
Family has not wholly ceased to influence successions. When
direct descendants fail it is even now the rules of the Joint
Family which determine the taking of the inheritance. Collateral
successions, when they are distant, follow the more primitive
form of the old institution, and are per capita; when they are
those of the nearer kindred they are adjusted to its more modern
shape, and are per stirpes.
The remark has further to be made that both Connor O'Brien
and Donogh O'Brien divided their own land among their sons or
kindred during their own lifetime. Like Laertes in the Odyssee
and like Lear in the tragedy of Shakespeare, the old Chief, in
the decay of his vigour, parts with his power and retains but a
fraction of the property he had administered; and the poorer
freeman becomes one of those 'senior' pensioners of the tribe so
often referred to in the tracts. Precisely the same practice is
recognised, and even (as some think) enjoined, by the more
archaic bodies of Hindoo jurisprudence. The principle is that the
right of each member of a family accrues at his birth; and, as
the family has in theory a perpetual existence, there is no
particular reason why, if the property is divided at all, it
should be exclusively divided at a death. The power of
distributing inheritances vested in the Celtic chiefs has been
made the basis of some very doubtful theories, but I have no
doubt it is essentially the same institution as the humble
privilege which is reserved to the Hindoo father by the
Mitakshara. It is part of the prerogative belonging to the
representative of the purest blood in the joint family; but in
proportion at the Joint Family, Sept, or Clan becomes more
artificial, the power of distribution tends more and more to look
like mere administrative authority.
Under some systems of Hindoo law, the father, when making a
distribution of property during his lifetime, is entitled to
retain a double share, and by some Indian customs the eldest son,
when dividing the patrimony with his brothers, takes twice at
much as the others. There are a good many traces of the usage in
this last form in a variety of communities. It is, for instance,
the 'birthright' of the Hebrew patriarchal history. I mention it
particularly because it seems to me to be sometimes improperly
confounded with the right conferred by what we call the rule of
Primogeniture. But the double share is rather given as the reward
or (perhaps we should say) the security for impartial
distribution, and we find it often coupled with the right to take
exclusively such things as are deemed incapable of partition, the
family house, for instance, and certain utensils. The proof that
it is not essentially a privilege of the eldest son, we find in
the circumstances that it is sometimes enjoyed by the father and
sometimes by the youngest of the sons, and in this way it is
connected with our own custom of Borough English, of which I
shall have more to say presently. There is a difference of
historical origin between this kind of privileged succession and
that which we call Primogeniture. The first is descended from a
custom of the Tribe; the last, to which I now pass, seems to me
traceable to the special position of the Chief.
The Brehon tracts at present translated do not add much to
the knowledge which we possessed of the Irish customs
corresponding to the usage of exclusive succession by the eldest
son; and Primogeniture remains what I called it thirteen years
ago ('Ancient Law,' p. 227), 'one of the most difficult problems
of historical jurisprudence.' The first of the difficulties which
surround it is the total absence, before a particular epoch in
history, of recorded precedents for any such mode of succession
to property. It was unknown to the Hellenic world. It was unknown
to the Roman world. It was unknown to the Jews, and apparently to
the whole Semitic world. In the records of all these societies
there are vestiges of great differences between the succession of
males and the succession of females; but there was nothing like
the exclusive succession of a single son to property, although
the descent of sovereignties to the eldest son of the last
reigning king was a familiar fact, and though the Greek
philosophers had conjectured that, in an earlier state of society
than theirs, the smaller groups of men -- families and villages
-- had been governed by eldest son after eldest son.
Even when the Teutonic races spread over Western Europe they
did not bring with them Primogeniture as their ordinary rule of
succession. The allodial property of the Teutonic freeman, that
share which he had theoretically received at the original
settlement of the brotherhood to which he belonged on their
domain, was divided at his death, when it was divided at all,
equally between his sons or equally between his sons and
daughters. It is quite certain, however, that the appearance of
Primogeniture in the West and its rapid diffusion must be
connected with the irruption of the barbarians, and with the
tribal ideas re-introduced by them into the Roman world. At this
point, however, we encounter another difficulty. The
Primogeniture which first meets us is not uniformly the
Primogeniture with which we are now familiar. The right of the
eldest son sometimes gives way to the right of the eldest male
relative of the deceased, and occasionally it seems as if neither
the succession of the eldest son nor that of the eldest relative
could take effect without election or confirmation by the members
of the aggregate group to which both belong.
As usual, we have to look for living illustrations of the
ancient system to the usages of the Hindoos. The Family,
according to the Hindoo theory, is despotically governed by its
head; but if he dies and the Family separates at his death, the
property is equally divided between the sons. If, however, the
Family does not separate, but allows itself to expand into a
Joint Family, we have the exact mixture of election and doubtful
succession which we find in the early examples of European
primogeniture. The eldest son, and after him his eldest son, is
ordinarily the manager of the affairs of the Joint Family, but
his privileges theoretically depend on election by the
brotherhood, and may be set aside by it, and, when they are set
aside, it is generally in favour of a brother of the deceased
manager, who, on the score of greater age, is assumed to be
better qualified than his nephew for administration and business.
In ancient Irish society the Joint Family, continued through many
generations, has grown first into the Sept and then into the
Clan, contracting a greater degree of artificiality in proportion
to its enlargement. The importance, meanwhile, of the Chief to
the Tribe has rather increased than diminished, since he is no
longer merely administrator of its civil affairs but its leader
in war. The system produced from these elements appears to me
sufficiently intelligible. The veneration of the Tribe is not
attracted by individuals of the Chieftain's family, but by the
family itself, as representing the purest blood of the entire
brotherhood. It chooses its head and leader (save on the very
rarest occasions) from this family, and there are instances of
the choice being systematically made from two families in
alternation. But the necessity of having a military leader in the
vigour of his physical and mental powers is much too imperious to
admit of his choice being invariably deferred to the death of the
ruling Chief, or to allow of the election falling universally or
even generally on his son. 'It is a custom among all the Irish,'
says Spenser, 'that presently after the death of any of their
chief lords or captains, they do presently assemble themselves to
a place generally appointed and known unto them to choose another
in his stead, where they do nominate and elect for the most part,
not the eldest son, nor any of the children of the lord deceased,
but the next to him of blood that is eldest and worthiest, as
commonly the next brother if he have any, or the next cousin, and
so forth, as any is elder in that kindred or sept; and then, next
to him, they choose the next of the blood to be Tanaist, who
shall succeed him in the said Captaincy if he live thereunto....
For when their Captain dieth, if the Signory should descend to
his child, and he perhaps an infant, another might peradventure
step in between or thrust him out by strong hand being then
unable to defend his right and to withstand the force of a
forreiner; and therefore they do appoint the eldest of the kin to
have the Signory, for that commonly he is a man of stronger years
and better experience to maintain the inheritance and to defend
the country.... And to this end the Tanaist is always ready
known, if it should happen to the Captain suddenly to die, or to
be slain in battle, or to be out of the country, to defend and
keep it from all such dangers.' (Spenser's 'View of the State of
Ireland.')
Primogeniture, therefore, considered as a rule of succession
to property, appears to me to be a product of tribal leadership
in its decay. Some such system as that represented by the Irish
Tanistry belonged probably at one time to all the tribal
communities which overran the Roman Empire, but no precise
assertion can be made as to the stage in their history at which
it began to be modified, especially since Sohm's investigations
(in his 'Fränkische Reichs-und Gerichtsverfassung') have shown us
how considerably the social organisation of some of these
communities had been affected by central or royal authority in
the interval between the observations of Tacitus and the writing
of the Salic Law. But I think we may safely conjecture that the
transition from the older to the newer Primogeniture took place
everywhere under circumstances nearly the reverse of those which
kept Tanistry so long alive in Ireland. Wherever some degree of
internal peace was maintained during tolerably long periods of
time, wherever an approach was made to the formation of societies
of the distinctive modern type, wherever military and civil
institutions began to group themselves round the central
authority of a king, the value of strategical capacity in the
humbler chiefs would diminish, and in the smaller brotherhoods
the respect for purity of blood would have unchecked play. The
most natural object of this respect is he who most directly
derives his blood from the last ruler, and thus the eldest son,
even though a minor, comes to be preferred in the succession to
his uncle; and, in default of sons, the succession may even
devolve on a woman. There are not a few indications that the
transformation of ideas was gradual. The disputes among great
Highland families about the title to the chieftaincy of
particular clans appear to date from a period when there was
still a conflict between the old principle of succession and the
new; and at a relatively later period, when throughout most of
Western Europe tribal customs have been replaced by feudal rules,
there is a visible uncertainty about such of these rules as
affect succession. Glanville, writing of English military tenures
in the later part of the reign of Henry the Second, observes:
'When anyone dies, leaving a younger son and a grandson, the
child of his eldest son, great doubt exists as to which of the
two the law prefers in the succession to the other, whether the
son or the grandson. Some think the younger son has more right to
the inheritance than the grandson... but others incline to think
that the grandson ought to be preferred to his uncle.'
(Glanville, vii. 7.) This ancient doubt has left traces of itself
on literature no less than on history, since it manifestly
affects the plot of Shakespeare's Hamlet; but the very question
of principle arose between the descendants of daughters in the
controversy between Bruce and Baliol. The succession to the Crown
of Scotland was ultimately settled, as it would have been in
earlier times, by what amounted to national election, but the
decision of Edward the First in favour of Baliol was undoubtedly
in accordance with principles which were gaining ground
everywhere, and I quite agree with Mr Burton (ii. 249) that the
celebrity of the dispute and the full consideration given to it
did much to settle the rule which prevailed in the end, that the
whole of the descendants of an elder child must be exhausted
before those of the younger had a title. When, however, the
eldest son had once taken the place of his uncle as the heir to
the humbler chieftaincies, he doubtless also obtained that
'portion of land attached to the Signory or Chiefry which went
without partition to the Tanaist;' and, as each community
gradually settled down into comparative peace under royal or
central authority, this demesne, as it was afterwards called,
must have assumed more and more the character of mere property
descending according to the rule of primogeniture. It may be
believed that in this way a principle of inheritance was formed
which first of all extended from the demesne to all the estates
of the holder of the Signory, however acquired, and ultimately
determined the law of succession for the privileged classes
throughout feudalised Europe. One vestige of this later course of
change may perhaps be traced in the noble tenure once widely
extended on the Continent, and called in French 'Parage,' under
which the near kinsmen of the eldest son still took an interest
in the family property, but held it of. him as his Peers. There
were, however, other causes than those just stated which led to
the great development of Primogeniture in the early part of the
Middle Ages, but for an examination of them I may be allowed to
refer to the work of mine which I mentioned above. ('Ancient
Law,' pp. 232 et seq.)
I do not think that the disaffirmation of the legality of
Tanistry, and the substitution for it of the rule of
Primogeniture, can justly be reckoned among the mistakes or
crimes of the English in Ireland. The practice had been
perpetuated in the country by its disorders, which preserved
little groups of kinsmen and their petty chiefs in an unnatural
vitality; and probably Sir John Davis does not speak too harshly
of it when he charges it with 'making all possessions uncertain,
and bringing confusion, barbarism, and incivility.' The decision
against the Irish Gavelkind was far less justifiable. Even if the
institution were exactly what Davis supposed it to be, there was
in.justice in suddenly disappointing the expectations of the
distant kindred who formed the sept of the last holder: but it is
probable that several different modes of succession were
confounded under the name of Gavelkind, and that in many cases a
number of children were unjustifiably deprived of their
inheritance for the advantage of one. All that can be said for
the authors of the revolution is that they seem to have sincerely
believed the mischievousness of the institutions they were
destroying; and it is some evidence of this that, when their
descendants a century later really wished to inflict an injury on
the majority of Irishmen, they re-introduced Gavelkind, though
not in its most ancient shape. They 'gavelled' the lands of
Papists and made them descendible to all the children alike.
There seems to me a melancholy resemblance between some of the
mistakes which, at two widely distant epochs, were committed by
Englishmen, apparently with the very best intentions, when they
were brought into contact with stages in the development of
institutions earlier than that which their own civilisation had
reached. Sir John Davis's language on the subject of the Irish
custom of Gavelkind might be that of an Anglo-Indian lawyer who
should violently censure the Brahminical jurists for not
confounding families with joint undivided families. I do not know
that any such mistake has been made in India, though undoubtedly
the dissolution of the Joint Family was in the early days of our
government unduly encouraged by our Courts. But there is a closer
and more unfortunate similarity between some of the English
experiments in Ireland and those tried in India. Under an Act of
the twelfth year of Queen Elizabeth the Lord Deputy was empowered
to take surrenders and regrant estates to the Irishry. The Irish
lords, says Davis, 'made surrenders of entire countries, and
obtained grants of the whole again to themselves only, and none
other, and all in demesne. In passing of which grants, there was
no care taken of the inferior septs of people.... So that upon
every such surrender or grant, there was but one freeholder made
in a whole country, which was the lord himself; all the rest were
but tenants at will, or rather tenants in villenage.' There are
believed to be many indian joint-families or septs which, in
their later form of village-communities, had the whole of their
lands similarly conferred on a single family out of their number,
or on a royal tax-gatherer outside them, under the earliest
Indian settlements. The error was not in introducing absolute
ownership into Ireland or India, but in the apportionment of the
rights of which property is made up. How, indeed, this
apportionment shall be wisely and justly made, when the time has
fully come for putting individual property in the place of
collective property by a conscious act of the State, is a problem
which taxes to the utmost the statesmanship of the most advanced
era, when animated by the highest benevolence and informed with
the widest knowledge. It has been reserved for our own generation
to witness the least unsatisfactory approach which has hitherto
been made towards the settlement of this grave question in the
great measures collectively known as the enfranchisement of the
Russian serfs.
The Irish practice of Tanistry connects itself with the rule
of Primogeniture, and the Irish Gavelkind with the rules of
succession most widely followed among both the Eastern and
Western branches of the Aryan race; but there are some passages
in the Brehon tracts which describe an internal division of the
Irish Family, a classification of its members and a corresponding
system of succession to property, extremely unlike any
arrangement which we, with our ideas, can conceive as growing out
of blood-relationship. Possibly, only a few years ago, these
passages would have been regarded as possessing too little
interest in proportion to their difficulty for it to be worth
anybody's while to bestow much thought upon their interpretation.
But some reasons may be given why we cannot wholly neglect them.
The distribution of the Irish Family into the Geilfine, the
Deirbhfine, the Iarfine, and the Indfine -- of which expressions
the three last are translated the True, the After, and the End
Families -- is obscurely pointed at in several texts of the
earlier volumes of the translations; but the Book of Aicill, in
the Third Volume, supplies us for the first time with statements
concerning it having some approach to precision. The learned
Editor of this volume, who has carefully examined them, describes
their effect in the following language: 'Within the Family,
seventeen members were organised in four divisions, of which the
junior class, known as the Geilfine division, consisted of five
persons; the Deirbhfine, the second in order; the Iarfine, the
third in order; and the Indfine, the senior of all, consisted
respectively of four persons. The whole organisation consisted,
and could only consist, of seventeen members. If any person was
born into the Geilfine division, its eldest member was promoted
into the Deirbhfine, the eldest member of the Deirbhfine passed
into the Iarfine; the eldest member of the Iarfine moved into the
Indfine; and the eldest member of the Indfine passed out of the
organisation altogether. It would appear that this transition
from a lower to a higher grade took place upon the introduction
of a new member into the Geilfine division, and therefore
depended upon the introduction of new members, not upon the death
of the seniors.' It seems an inference from all the passages
bearing on the subject that any member of the Joint-family or
Sept might be selected as the starting-point, and might become a
root from which sprung as many of these groups of seventeen men
as he had sons. As soon as any one of the sons had four children,
a full Geilfine sub-group of five persons was formed; but any
fresh birth of a male child to this son or to any of his male
descendants had the effect of sending up the eldest member of the
Geilfine sub-group, provided always he were not the person from
whom it had sprung, into the Deirbhfine. A succession of such
births completed in time the Deirbhfine division, and went on to
form the Iarfine and the Indfine, the After and the End Families.
The essential principle of the system seems to me a distribution
into fours. The fifth person in the Geilfine division I take to
be the parent from whom the sixteen descendants spring, and it
will be seen, from the proviso which I inserted above, that I do
not consider his place in the organisation to have been ever
changed. He appears to be referred to in the tracts as the
Geilfine Chief.
The interest of this distribution of the kinsmen consists in
this: whatever else it is, it is not a classification of the
members of the family founded on degrees of consanguinity, as we
understand them. And, even if we went no farther than this, the
fact would suggest the general reflection which often occurs to
the student of the history of law, that many matters which seem
to us altogether simple, natural, and therefore probably
universal, are in reality artificial and confined to limited
spheres of application. When one of us opens his Prayer-book and
glances at the Table of Prohibited Degrees, or when the law
student turns to his Blackstone and examines the Table of
Descents, he possibly knows that disputes have arisen about the
rights and duties proper to be adjusted to these scales of
relationship, but it perhaps has never occurred to him that any
other view of the nature of relationship than that upon which
they are based could possibly be entertained. Yet here in the
Book of Aicill is a conception of kinship and of the rights
flowing from it altogether different from that which appears in
the Tables of Degrees and of Descents. The groups are not formed
upon the same principles, nor distinguished from one another on
the same principles. The English Tables are based upon a
classification by degrees, upon identity in the number of
descents by which a given class of persons are removed from a
given person. But the ancient Irish classification obviously
turns upon nothing of the sort. A Geilfine class may consist of a
father and four sons who are not in the same degree, and the
Brehon writers even speak of its consisting of a father, son,
grandson, great-grandson, and great-great-grandson, which is a
conceivable case of Geilfine relationship, though it can scarcely
have been a common one. Now, each of these relatives is in a
different degree from the others. Yet this distribution of the
family undoubtedly affected the law of inheritance, and the
Geilfine class, to our eyes so anomalous, might succeed in
certain eventualities to the property of the other classes, of
which the composition is in our eyes equally arbitrary.
This singular family organisation suggests, however, a
question which, in the present state of enquiry on the subject
which occupies us, cannot fairly be avoided. I have spoken before
of a volume on 'Systems of Consanguinity and Affinity in the
Human Family,' published by the Smithsonian institute at
Washington. The author, Mr Lewis Morgan, is one of the
comparatively few Americans who have perceived that, if only on
the score of the plain extant evidences of the civilisation which
was once enjoyed and lost by some branches of their stock, the
customs and ideas of the Red Indians deserve intelligent study.
In prosecuting his researches Mr Morgan was struck with the fact
that the conception of Kinship entertained by the Indians, though
extremely clear and precise, and regarded by them as of much
importance, was extremely unlike that which prevails among the
now civilised races. He then commenced a laborious investigation
of the whole subject, chiefly through communications with
correspondents in all parts of the world. The result at which he
arrived was that the ideas on the subject of relationship
entertained by the human family as a whole were extraordinarily
various, but that a generalisation was possible, and that these
ideas could be referred to one or other of two distinct systems,
which Mr Morgan calls respectively the Descriptive and the
Classificatory system. The time at our command will only allow me
to explain his meaning very briefly. The Descriptive system is
that to which we are accustomed. It has come to us from the Canon
law, or else from the Roman law, more particularly as declared in
the 118th Novel of Justinian, but it is not at all confined to
societies deeply affected by Civil and Canon law. Its essence
consists in the giving of separate names to the classes of
relatives which are formed by the members of the family who are
removed by the same number of descents from yourself, the ego or
propositus, or from some common ancestor. Thus, your uncle stands
to you in the third degree, there being one degree or step from
yourself to your father or mother, a second from your father or
mother to their parents, a third from those parents to their
other children, among whom are your uncles. And 'uncle' is a
general name for all male relatives standing to you in this third
degree. The other names employed under the Descriptive system are
among the words in most common use; yet it is to be noted that
the system cannot in practice be carried very far. We speak of
uncle, aunt, nephew, niece, cousin; but then we get to
great-uncle, grand-nephew, and so forth, and at length lose our
way amid complications of 'great' and 'grand' until we cease to
distinguish our distant kindred by particular designations. The
Roman technical law went considerably farther than we do with the
specific nomenclature of relatives; yet there is reason to think
that the popular dialects of Latin were more barren, and no
Descriptive system can go on indefinitely with the process. On
the other hand, the Classificatory system groups the relatives in
classes, often large ones, which have no necessary connection
with degrees. Under it a man's father and his uncles are grouped
together, sometimes his uncles on his father's side, sometimes on
the mother's side, sometimes on both; and perhaps they are all
inherently called his fathers. Similarly, a man's brothers and
all his male cousins may be classed together and called his
brothers. The effect of the system is in general to bring within
your mental grasp a much greater number of your kindred than is
possible under the system to which we are accustomed. This
advantage is gained, it is true, at the expense of the power of
discriminating between the members of the several classes, but
still it may be very important in certain states of society,
since each of the classes usually stands under some sort of
conjoint responsibility.
I am not now concerned with the explanation of the
Classificatory system of Kinship. Mr. Morgan and the school to
which he belongs find it, as I said before, in a state of sexual
relations, alleged to have once prevailed universally throughout
the human race, and known now to occur in some obscure fragments
of it. The fullest account of the condition of society in which
these views of relationship are believed to have grown up may be
read in Mr McLennan's most original work on Primitive Marriage.
The point before us, however, is whether we have a trace of the
Classificatory system in the Irish division of the Family into
four small groups, no one of which is necessarily composed of
relatives of the same degree, and each of which has distinct
rights of its own, and stands under definite responsibilities.
Undoubtedly, the Descriptive system was that which the ancient
Irish generally followed; but still it would be an interesting,
and, in the opinion of pre-historic writers, an important fact,
if a distribution of the Family only intelligible as a relic of
the Classificatory system remained as a 'survival' among the
institutions reflected by the Brehon Laws. My own opinion, which
I will state at once, is that the resemblance between the Irish
classification of kindred and the modes of classification
described by Mr Morgan is only superficial and accidental. The
last explanation Mr. Morgan would admit of the remarkable ideas
concerning kinship which form the subject of his book would be
that they are connected with the Patria Potestas, that famous
institution which held together what he and his school consider
to be a relatively modern form of the Family. I think, however, I
can assign some at least plausible reasons for believing that
this perplexing four-fold division of the Celtic Family is
neither a mere survival from immemorial barbarism nor, as most
persons who have noticed it have supposed, a purely arbitrary
arrangement, but a monument of that Power of the Father which is
the first and greatest land -mark in the course of legal history.
Let me repeat that the Irish Family is assumed to consist of
three groups of four persons and one group of five persons. I
have already stated that I consider the fifth person in the group
of five to be the parent from whom all the other members of the
four divisions spring, or with whom they are connected by
adoptive descent. Thus, the whole of the natural or adoptive
descendants are distributed into four groups of four persons
each, their rank in the Family being in the inverse order of
their seniority. The Geilfine group is several times stated by
the Brehon lawyers to be at once the highest and the youngest.
Now, Mr Whitley Stokes has conveyed to me his opinion that
'Geilfine, means 'hand-family.' As I have reason to believe that
a different version of the term has been adopted by eminent
authority, I will give the reasons for Mr Stokes's view. 'Gil'
means 'hand' -- this was also the rendering of O'Curry -- and it
is, in fact, the Greek word cheir. In several Aryan languages the
term signifying 'hand' is an expressive equivalent for Power, and
specially for Family or Patriarchal Power. Thus, in Greek we have
upocheirios and cherus, for the person under the hand. In Latin
we have herus 'master,' from an old word, cognate to cheir; and
we have also one of the cardinal terms of ancient Roman Family
Law, manus, or hand, in the sense of Patriarchal authority. In
Roman legal phraseology, the wife who haS become in law her
husband's daughter by marriage is in manu. The son discharged
from Paternal Power is emancipated. The free person who has
undergone mancipation is in mancipio. In the Celtic languages we
have, with other words, 'Gilla,' a servant, a word familiar to
sportsmen and travellers in the Highlands and to readers of Scott
in its Anglicised shape, 'Gillie.'
My suggestion, then, is that the key to the Irish
distribution of the Family, as to so many other things in ancient
law, must be sought in the Patria Potestas. It seems to me to be
founded on the order of emancipation from Paternal authority. The
Geilfine, the Hand-family, consists of the parent and the four
natural or adoptive sons immediately under his power. The other
groups consist of emancipated descendants, diminishing in dignity
in proportion to their distance from the group which, according
to archaic notions, constitutes the true or representative
family.
The remains which we possess of the oldest Roman law point to
a range of ideas very similar to that which appears to have
produced the Irish institution. The Family under Patria Potestas
was, with the Pater-Familias, the true Roman Family. The children
who were emancipated from Paternal Power may have gained a
practical advantage, but they undoubtedly lost in theoretical
dignity. They underwent that loss of status which in ancient
legal phraseology was called a capitis deminutio. We know too
that, according to primitive Roman law, they lost all rights of
inheritance, and these were only gradually restored to them by a
relatively modern institution, the Equity of the Roman Praetor.
Nevertheless there are hints on all sides that, as a general
rule, sons as they advanced in years were enfranchished from
Paternal Power, and no doubt this practice supplies a partial
explanation of the durability of the Patria Potestas as a Roman
institution. The statements, therefore, which we find concerning
the Celtic Family would not be very untrue of the Roman. The
youngest children were first in dignity.
Of course I am not contending for an exact resemblance
between the ancient Roman and ancient Celtic Family. We have no
trace of any systematised discharge of the sons from the Roman
Patria Potestas; their enfranchisement seems always to have been
dependent on the will of the Pater-Familias. The divisions of the
Celtic Family seem, on the other hand, to have been determined by
a self-acting principle. An even more remarkable distinction is
suggested by passages in the Book of Aicill which seem to show
that the parent, who retained his place in the Geilfine group,
might himself have a father alive. The peculiarity, which has no
analogy in ancient Roman law, may possibly have its explanation
in usages which many allusions in the Brehon law show to have
been followed by the Celts, as they were by several other ancient
societies. The older members of the Family or Joint Family seem
in advanced age to have become pensioners on it, and, like
Laertes in the Odyssee, to have vacated their privileges of
ownership or of authority. On such points, however, it is safest
to suspend the judgment till the Brehon law has been more
thoroughly and critically examined.
At the date at which the Book of Aicill was put together the
Irish division of the Family seems only to have had importance in
the law of succession after death. This, however, is the rule in
all societies. When the ancient constitution of the Family has
ceased to affect anything else, it affects inheritance. All laws
of inheritance are, in fact, made up of the débris of the various
forms which the Family has assumed. Our system of succession to
personalty, and the whole French law of inheritance, are derived
from Roman law, which in its latest condition is a mixture of
rules having their origin in successive ascertainable stages of
the Roman Family, and is a sort of compromise between them.
The authors of the Brehon Law Tracts frequently compare the
Geilfine division of the Family to the human hand, but with them
the comparison has at first sight the air of being purely
fanciful. The Geilfine group has five members, and the hand has
five fingers. Dr Sullivan -- who, however, conceives the Geilfine
in a way materially different from the authorities whom I follow
-- tells us that 'as they represented the roots of the spreading
branches of the Family, they were called the cuic mera na Fine,
or the 'five fingers of the Fine.' If the explanation of
'Geilfine' which I have partly taken from Mr Whitley Stokes be
correct, we must suppose that, at the time at which the Brehon
tracts were thrown into their present form, the Patria Potestas
of the ancient Irish, though frequently referred to in the tracts
as the father's power of 'judgment, proof, and witness, over his
sons, had nevertheless considerably decayed, as it is apt to do
in all societies under unfavourable circumstances, and that with
this decay the association of the Geilfine group with 'hand' in
the sense of Paternal Power had also become faint. There is,
however, a real connection of another kind between the Geilfine
group and the five fingers of the hand. If you ask why in a large
number of ancient societies Five is the representative number, no
answer can be given except that there are five fingers on the
human hand. I commend to your attention on this point Mr Tylor's
most instructive chapter on the infancy of the Art of Counting,
in the first volume of his 'Primitive Culture.'
'Finger-counting,' he observes, 'is not only found among savages
and uneducated men, carrying on a part of their mental operations
where language is only partly able to follow it, but it also
retains a place and an undoubted use among the most cultured
nations as a preparation and means of acquiring higher
arithmetical methods, (I. 246.) Five is thus a primitive natural
maximum number. You will recollect that the early English
Township was represented by the Reeve and the four men. The
Council of an indian Village Community most commonly consists of
five persons, and throughout the East the normal number of a Jury
or Board of arbitrators is always five -- the punchayet familiar
to all who have the smallest knowledge of India. The Geilfine,
the representative group of the Irish Family, consisting of the
Parent and the four descendants still retained under his Patria
Potestas, falls in with this widely extended conception of
representation.
The Patria Potestas seems to me the most probable source of a
well-known English custom which has occasioned no little surprise
to students of our law. 'Borough English,' under which the
youngest son and not the eldest succeeds to the burgage-tenements
of his father, has from time immemorial being recognised as a
widely disused usage of which it is the duty of our Courts to
take judicial notice, and many writers on our real property laws,
from Littleton downwards, have attempted to account for it.
Littleton thought he saw its origin in the tender age of the
youngest son, who was not so well able to help himself as the
rest of the brethren. Other authors, as Blackstone tells us,
explained it by a supposed right of the Seigneur or lord, now
very generally regarded as apocryphal, which raised a presumption
of the eldest son's illegitimacy. Blackstone himself goes as far
a-field as North-Eastern Asia for an explanation. He quotes from
Duhalde the statement that the custom of descent to the youngest
son prevails among the Tartars. 'That nation,' he says, 'is
composed totally of shepherds and herdsmen; and the elder sons,
as soon as they are capable of leading a pastoral life, migrate
from their father with a certain allotment of cattle, and go to
seek a new habitation. The youngest son, therefore, who continues
longest with the father, is naturally the heir of his house, the
rest being already provided for. And thus we find that, among
many other Northern nations, it was the custom for all the sons
but one to migrate from the father, which one now became his
heir.' The explanation was really the best which could be given
in Blackstone's day, but it was not necessary to go for it so far
from home. It is a remarkable circumstance that an institution
closely resembling Borough English is found in the Laws of Wales,
giving the rule of descent for all cultivating villeins. 'Cum
fratres inter se dividant haereditatem,' says a rule of that
portion of the Welsh Law which has survived in Latin; 'junior
debet habere tygdyn, i. e. aedificia patris sui, et octo acras de
terrâ, si habuerint, (L. Wall., vol. ii. p. 780). And, when the
youngest son has had the paternal dwelling-house, eight acres of
land and certain tools and utensils, the other sons are to divide
what remains. It appears to me that the institution is founded on
the same ideas as those which gave a preference to the Geilfine
division of the Celtic family. The home-staying, unemancipated
son, still retained under Patria Potestas, is preferred to the
others. If this be so, there is no room for the surprise which
the custom of Borough English has excited, and which arises from
contrasting it with the rule of Primogeniture. But the two
institutions have a different origin. Primogeniture is not a
natural outgrowth of the family. It is a political not a tribal
institution, and comes to us not from the clansmen but from the
Chief. But the rule of Borough English, like the privileges of
the Geilfine, is closely connected with the ancient conception of
the Family as linked together by Patria Potestas. Those who are
most emphatically part of the Family when it is dissolved by the
death of its head are preferred in the inheritance according to
ideas which appear to have been once common to the primitive
Romans, to the Irish and Welsh Celts, and to the original
observers, whoever they were, of the English custom.
Mr Tylor has justly observed that the true lesson of the new
science of Comparative Mythology is the barrenness in primitive
times of the faculty which we most associate with mental
fertility, the Imagination. Comparative Jurisprudence, as might
be expected from the natural stability of law and custom, yet
more strongly suggests the same inference, and points to the
fewness of ideas and the slowness of additions to the mental
stock as among the most general characteristics of mankind in its
infancy.
The fact that the generation of new ideas does not proceed in
all states of society as rapidly as in that to which we belong,
is only not familiar to us through our inveterate habit of
confining our observation of human nature to a small portion of
its phenomena. When we undertake to examine it, we are very apt
to look exclusively at a part of Western Europe and perhaps of
the American Continent. We constantly leave aside India, China,
and the whole Mahometan East. This limitation of our field of
vision is perfectly justifiable when we are occupied with the
investigation of the laws of Progress. Progress is, in fact, the
same thing as the continued production of new ideas, and we can
only discover the law of this production by examining sequences
of ideas where they are frequent and of considerable length. But
the primitive condition of the progressive societies is best
ascertained from the observable condition of those which are
non-progressive; and thus we leave a serious gap in our knowledge
when we put aside the mental state of the millions upon millions
of men who fill what we vaguely call the East as a phenomenon of
little interest and of no instructiveness. The fact is not
unknown to most of us that, among these multitudes, Literature,
Religion, and Art -- or what corresponds to them -- move always
within a distinctly drawn circle of unchanging notions; but the
fact that this condition of thought is rather the infancy of the
human mind prolonged than a different maturity from that most
familiar to us, is very seldom brought home to us with a
clearness rendering it fruitful of instruction.
I do not, indeed, deny that the difference between the East
and the West, in respect of the different speed at which new
ideas are produced, is only a difference of degree. There were
new ideas produced in India even during the disastrous period
just before the English entered it, and in the earlier ages this
production must have been rapid. There must have been a series of
ages during which the progress of China was very steadily
maintained, and doubtless our assumption of the absolute
immobility of the Chinese and other societies is in part the
expression of our ignorance. Conversely, I question whether new
ideas come into being in the West as rapidly as modern literature
and conversation sometimes suggest. It cannot, indeed, be doubted
that causes, unknown to the ancient world, lead among us to the
multiplication of ideas. Among them are the never ceasing
discovery of new facts of nature, inventions changing the
circumstances and material conditions of life, and new rules of
social conduct; the chief of this last class, and certainly the
most powerful in the domain of law proper, I take to be the
famous maxim that all institutions should be adapted to produce
the greatest happiness of the greatest number. Nevertheless,
there are not a few signs that even conscious efforts to increase
the number of ideas have a very limited success. Look at Poetry
and Fiction. From time to time one mind endowed with the
assemblage of qualities called genius makes a great and sudden
addition to the combinations of thought, word, and sound which it
is the province of those arts to produce; yet as suddenly, after
one or a few such efforts, the productive activity of both
branches of invention ceases, and they settle down into
imitativeness for perhaps a century at a time. An humbler example
may be sought in rules of social habit. We speak of the caprices
of Fashion; yet, on examining them historically, we find them
singularly limited, so much so, that we are sometimes tempted to
regard Fashion as passing through cycles of form ever repeating
themselves. There are, in fact, more natural limitations on the
fertility of intellect than we always admit to ourselves, and
these, reflected in bodies of men, translate themselves into that
weariness of novelty which seems at intervals to overtake whole
Western societies, including minds of every degree of information
and cultivation.
My present object is to point out some of the results of
mental sterility at a time when society is in the stage which we
have been considering. Then, the relations between man and man
were summed up in kinship. The fundamental assumption was that
all men, not united with you by blood, were your enemies or your
slaves. Gradually the assumption became untrue in fact, and men,
who were not blood relatives, became related to one another on
terms of peace and mutual tolerance or mutual advantage Yet no
new ideas came into being exactly harmonising with the new
relation, nor was any new phraseology invented to express it. The
new member of each group was spoken of as akin to it, was treated
as akin to it, was thought of as akin to it. So little were ideas
changed that, as we shall see, the very affections and emotions
which the natural bond evoked were called forth in extraordinary
strength by the artificial tie. The clear apprehension of these
facts throws light on several historical problems, and among them
on some of Irish history. Yet they ought not greatly to surprise
us, since, in a modified form, they make part of our everyday
experience. Almost everybody can observe that, when new
circumstances arise, we use our old ideas to bring them home to
us; it is only afterwards, and sometimes long afterwards, that
our ideas are found to have changed. An English Court of Justice
is in great part an engine for working out this process. New
combinations of circumstance are constantly arising, but in the
first instance they are exclusively interpreted according to old
legal ideas. A little later lawyers admit that the old ideas are
not quite what they were before the new circumstances arose.
The slow generation of ideas in ancient times may first be
adduced as necessary to the explanation of that great family of
Fictions which meet us on the threshold of history and historical
jurisprudence. Specimens of these fictions may be collected on
all sides from bodies of archaic custom or rudimentary systems of
law, but those most to our present purpose are fictitious
assumptions of blood-relationship. Elsewhere I have pointed out
the strange conflict between belief or theory and what seems to
us notorious fact, which is observable in early Roman and
Hellenic society. 'It may be affirmed of early commonwealths that
their citizens considered all the groups in which they claimed
membership to be founded on common lineage. What was obviously
true of the Family was believed to be true first of the House,
next of the Tribe, lastly of the State. And yet we find that,
along with this belief, each community preserved records or
traditions which distinctly showed that the fundamental
assumption was false. Whether we look to the Greek States, or to
Rome, or to the Teutonic aristocracies in Ditmarsh which
furnished Niebuhr with so many valuable illustrations, or to the
Celtic clan associations, or to that strange social organisation
of the Sclavonic Russians and Poles which has only lately
attracted notice, everywhere we discover traces of passages in
their history when men of alien descent were admitted to, and
amalgamated with, the original brotherhood. Adverting to Rome
singly, we perceive that the primary group, the Family, was being
constantly adulterated by the practice of adoption, while stories
seem to have been always current respecting the exotic extraction
of one of the original Tribes, and concerning a large addition to
the Houses made by one of the early Kings. The composition of the
State uniformly assumed to be natural was nevertheless known to
be in great measure artificial.' (Ancient Law, pp. 129, 130.) The
key to these singular phenomena has been recently sought in the
ancient religions, and has been supposed to be found in the
alleged universal practice of worshipping dead ancestors. Very
striking illustrations of them are, however, supplied by the law
and usage of Ireland after it had been Christianised for
centuries, and long after any Eponymous progenitor can be
conceived as worshipped . The Family, House, and Tribe of the
Romans -- and, so far as my knowledge extends, all the analogous
divisions of Greek communities -- were distinguished by separate
special names. But in the Brehon Law, the same word, Fine (or
'family'), is used for the Family as we ordinarily understand it
-- that is, for the children of a living parent and their
descendants -- for the Sept or, in phrase of Indian law, the
Joint Undivided Family, that is, the combined descendants of an
ancestor long since dead -- for the Tribe, which was the
political unit of ancient Ireland, and even for the large Tribes
in which the smaller units were sometimes absorbed. Nevertheless
the Irish Family undoubtedly received additions through Adoption.
The Sept, or larger group of kindred, had a definite place for
strangers admitted to it on stated conditions, the Fine Taccair.
The Tribe avowedly included a number of persons, mostly refugees
from other Tribes, whose only connection with it was common
allegiance to its Chief. Moreover the Tribe in its largest
extension and considered a political as well as a social unit
might have been absorbed with others in a Great or Arch Tribe,
and here the sole source of the kinship still theoretically
maintained is Conquest. Yet all these groups were in some sense
or other Families.
Nor does the artificiality solely consist in the extension of
the sphere of kinship to classes known to have been originally
alien to the true brotherhood. An even more interesting example
of it presents itself when the ideas of kinship and the
phraseology proper to consanguinity are extended to associations
which we should now contemplate as exclusively founded on
contract, such as partnerships and guilds. There are no more
interesting pages in Dr Sullivan's Introduction (pp. ccvi et
seq.) than those in which he discusses the tribal origin of
Guilds. He claims for the word itself a Celtic etymology, and he
traces the institution to the grazing partnerships common among
the ancient Irish. However this may be, it is most instructive to
find the same words used to describe bodies of co-partners,
formed by contract, and bodies of co-heirs or co-parceners formed
by common descent. Each assemblage of men seems to have been
conceived as a Family. As regards Guilds, I certainly think, as I
thought three years ago, that they have been much too confidently
attributed to a relatively modern origin; and that many of them,
and much which is common to all of them, may be suspected to have
grown out of the primitive brotherhoods of co-villagers and
kinsmen. The trading guilds which survive in our own country have
undergone every sort of transmutation which can disguise their
parentage. They are artificial to begin with, though the
hereditary principle has a certain tendency to assert itself.
They have long since relinquished the occupations which gave them
a name. They mostly trace their privileges and constitution to
some royal charter; and kingly grants, real or fictitious, are
the great cause of interruption in English History. Yet anybody
who, with a knowledge of primitive law and history, examines the
internal mechanism and proceedings of a London Company will see
in many parts of them plain traces of the ancient brotherhood of
kinsmen, 'joint in food, worship, and estate;' and I suppose that
the nearest approach to an ancient tribal holding in Ireland is
to be found in those confiscated lands which are now the property
of several of these Companies.
The early history of Contract, I need scarcely tell you, is
almost exclusively to be sought in the history of Roman law. Some
years ago I pointed to the entanglement which primitive Roman
institutions disclose between the conveyance of property and the
contract of sale. Let me now observe that one or two others of
the great Roman contracts appear to me, when closely examined, to
afford evidence of their having been gradually evolved through
changes in the mechanism of primitive society. You have seen how
brotherhoods of kinsmen transform themselves into alliances
between persons whom we can only call partners, but still at
first sight the link is missing which would enable us to say that
here we have the beginning of the contract of partnership. Look,
however, at the peculiar contract called by the Romans 'societas
omnium (or universorum) bonorum.' It is commonly translated
'partnership with unlimited liability,' and there is no doubt
that the elder form of partnership has had great effect on the
newer form. But you will find that, in the societas omnium
bonorum, not only were all the liabilities of the partnership the
liabilities of the several partners, but the whole of the
property of each partner was brought into the common stock and
was enjoyed as a common fund. No such arrangement as this is
known in the modern world as the result of ordinary agreement,
though in some countries it may be the effect of marriage. It
appears to me that we are carried back to the joint brotherhoods
of primitive society, and that their development must have given
rise to the contract before us. Let us turn again to the contract
of Mandatum or Agency. The only complete representation of one
man by another which the Roman law allowed was the representation
of the Paterfamilias by the son or slave under his power. The
representation of the Principal by the Agent is much more
incomplete, and it seems to me probable that we have in it a
shadow of that thorough coalescence between two individuals which
was only possible anciently when they belonged to the same
family.
The institutions which I have taken as my examples are
institutions of indigenous growth, developed probably more or
less within all ancient societies by the expansion of the notion
of kinship. But it sometimes happens that a wholly foreign
institution is introduced from without into a society based upon
assumed consanguinity, and then it is most instructive to observe
how closely, in such a case, material which antecedently we
should think likely to oppose the most stubborn resistance to the
infiltration of tribal ideas assimilates itself nevertheless to
the model of a Family or Tribe. You may be aware that the ancient
Irish Church has long been a puzzle to ecclesiastical historians.
There are difficulties suggested by it on which I do not pretend
to throw any new light, nor, indeed, could they conveniently be
considered here. Among perplexities of this class are the
extraordinary multiplication of bishops and their dependence,
apparently an almost servile dependence, on the religious houses
to which they were attached. But the relation of the various
ecclesiastical bodies to one another was undoubtedly of the
nature of tribal relation. The Brehon law seems to me fully to
confirm the account of the matter given, from the purely
ecclesiastical literature, by Dr Todd, in the Introduction to his
Life of St Patrick. One of the great Irish or Scotic
Missionaries, who afterwards nearly invariably reappears as a
Saint, obtains a grant of lands from some chieftain or tribe in
Ireland or Celtic Britain, and founds a monastery there, or it
may be that the founder of the religious house is already himself
the chieftain of a tribe. The House becomes the parent of others,
which again may in their turn throw out minor religious
establishments, at once monastic and missionary. The words
signifying 'family' or 'tribe' and 'kinship' are applied to all
the religious bodies created by this process. Each monastic
house, with its monks and bishops, constitutes a 'family' or
'tribe;' and its secular or servile dependants appear to be
sometimes included under the name. The same appellation is given
to the collective assemblage of religious houses formed by the
parent monastery and the various churches or monastic bodies
sprung from it. These make up together the 'tribe of the saint,'
but this last expression is not exclusively employed with this
particular meaning. The abbot of the parent house and all the
abbots of the minor houses are the 'comharbas' or co-heirs of the
saint, and in yet another sense the 'family' or 'tribe' of the
saint means his actual tribesmen or blood-relatives. Iona, or Hy,
was, as you know, the famous religious house founded by St
Columba near the coast of the newer Scotia. 'The Abbot of Hy',
says Dr Todd, 'or Co-arb of Columba, was the common head of
Durrow, Kells, Swords, Drumcliff, and other houses in Ireland
founded by Columba, as well as of the parent monastery of Hy, and
the "family of Colum-kille" was composed of the congregations or
inmates and dependants of all those monasteries. The families,
therefore, of such monasteries as Clomacnois or Durrow might
muster a very respectable body of fighting men.' Let me add, that
there is very good evidence that these 'families of the saints'
were occasionally engaged in sanguinary little wars. But, 'in
general' (I now quote again from Dr Todd), 'the "family" meant
only the monks or religious of the house.'
It will be obvious to you that this application of the same
name to all these complicated sets of relations is every now and
then extremely perplexing, but the key to the difficulty is the
conception of the kindred branching off in successive generations
from the common stock, planting themselves occasionally at a
distance, but never altogether breaking the bond which connected
them with their original family and chief. Nothing, let me
observe, can be more curious than the way in which, throughout
these artificial structures, the original natural principle upon
which they were modelled struggles to assert itself at the
expense of the imitative system. In all the more modern guilds,
membership always tended to become hereditary, and here we have
the Brehon law striving to secure a preference, in elections to
the Abbacy, to the actual blood-relatives of the sainted founder.
The ecclesiastical rule, we know, required election by the monks,
but the Corus Bescna declares that, on a vacancy, the 'family of
the saint' (which here means the founder's sept), if there be a
qualified monk among them, ought to be preferred in elections to
the Abbacy -- 'though there be but a psalm-singer of them, if he
be fit, he shall have it.' And it proceeds to say that, if no
relative or tribesman of the saint be qualified, the Abbacy shall
go to some member of the tribe which originally granted the land.
A very modern example of this plasticity of the notion of
kinship has recently been brought to my notice. The co-villagers
of an Indian village call themselves brothers, although, as I
have frequently observed, the composition of the community is
often artificial and its origin very miscellaneous. The
appellation, at the same time, is distinctly more than a mere
word. Now, some of the Christian missionaries have recently tried
an experiment which promises to have much success, and have
planted in villages converts collected from all sorts of
different regions. Yet these persons, as I am informed, fall into
a 'brotherhood' quite as easily and talk the language and assume
the habits appropriate to it quite as naturally as if they and
their forefathers had been members from time immemorial of this
peculiarly Indian association, the village-community.
There is, however, another set of phenomena which belong to
the same class, but which seem to me to have been much
misunderstood. When men, under the influence of the cast of
thought we are discussing, are placed in circumstances which
naturally breed affection and sympathy, or when they are placed
in a relation which they are taught to consider especially
sacred, not only their words and ideas but their feelings,
emotions, and prejudices mould themselves on the pattern of those
which naturally result from consanguinity. We have, I believe, a
striking example of the process in the history of the Christian
Church. You know, I dare say, that Spiritual Relationship or the
tie between a sponsor and a baptized person, or between Sponsors,
or even between the sponsors and the family of the baptized,
became by degrees the source of a great number of prohibitions
against intermarriage, which stood on the same level with those
based on affinity, and almost with those founded on
consanguinity. The earliest evidence we have that this order of
ideas was stirring the Christian community is, I believe, a
Constitution of Justinian in the Code (v. 4. 26), which forbids
the marriage of the sponsor with the baptized; but the
prohibitions were rapidly extended by the various authorities
which contributed to the Canon law, and were finally regulated
and somewhat narrowed by the Council of Trent. Nowadays, I am
told that they merely survive formally in the Roman Catholic
Church, and that dispensations relaxing them are obtainable as of
course. The explanation of the system by technical theologians is
that it is based on the wish to give a peculiar sacredness to the
bond created by sponsorship, and this I believe to be a true
account of its origin. But I do not believe that Spiritual
Relationship, a structure based on contract, would in every stage
of thought have assimilated itself to natural relationship. The
system developed itself just when Christianity was being diffused
among races whose social organisation was founded on kinship, and
I cannot but think that their ideas reacted on the Church. With
such races a very sacred tie was necessarily of the nature of a
family tie, and carried with it the same associations and the
same order of feeling. I do not, therefore, consider that such
terms as Gossipred, Godfather, Godson -- to which there are
counterparts in several languages -- were created by the theory
of Spiritual Relationship, but rather that they mark the process
by which that theory was formed.
It seems to me accordingly in the highest degree natural that
Spiritual Relationship, when introduced into a tribal society
like that of the ancient Irish, should closely assimilate itself
to blood-relationship. We know in fact that it did so, and that
the stringency of the relation and the warmth of the affections
which it produced moved the scorn, the wrath, and the
astonishment of several generations of English observers,
deriving their ideas from a social order now become very unlike
that of Ireland. But by the side of Gossipred, or Spiritual
Relationship, there stood another much more primitive
institution, which was extraordinarily developed among the
ancient Irish, though not at all peculiar to them. This was
Fosterage, the giving and taking of children for nurture. Of the
reasons why this practice, now known to have been widely diffused
among Aryan communities, should have had an exceptional
importance and popularity in ireland, we can say little more than
that they probably belong to the accidents of Irish history and
of Irish social life. But of the fact there is no doubt. An
entire sub-tract in the Senchus Mor is devoted to the Law of
Fosterage, and sets out with the greatest minuteness the rights
and duties attaching to all parties when the children of another
family were received for nurture and education. It is classed,
with Gossipred, as one of the anomalies or curses of Ireland by
all her English critics, from Giraldus Cambrensis in the twelfth
century to Spenser in the sixteenth. It seemed to them monstrous
that the same mother's milk should produce in Ireland the same
close affections as did common paternity in their own country.
The true explanation was one which is only now dawning On us. It
was, that Fosterage was an institution which, though artificial
in its commencements, was natural in its operations; and that the
relation of foster-parent and foster-child tended, in that stage
of feeling, to become indistinguishable from the relation of
father and son.
The form of Fosterage which has most interest for the modern
enquirer is called by the Translators of the Brehon tracts
Literary Fosterage. It was an institution nearly connected with
the existence of the Brehon Law Schools, and it consists of the
various relations established between the Brehon teacher and the
pupils he received into his house for instruction in the Brehon
lore. However it may surprise us that the connection between
Schoolmaster and Pupil was regarded as peculiarly sacred by the
ancient Irish, and as closely resembling natural fatherhood, the
Brehon tracts leave no room for doubt on the point. It is
expressly laid down that it created the same Patria Potestas as
actual paternity; and the literary fosterfather, though he
teaches gratuitously, has a claim through life upon portions of
the property of the literary foster-son. Thus the Brehon with his
pupils constituted not a school in our sense but a true family.
While the ordinary foster-father was bound by the law to give
education of some kind to his foster-children -- to the sons of
chiefs instructions in riding, shooting with the bow, swimming,
and chess-playing, and instruction to their daughters in sewing,
cutting out, and embroidery -- the Brehon trained his foster-sons
in learning of the highest dignity, the lore of the chief
literary profession. He took payment, but it was the law which
settled it for him. It was part of his status, and not the result
of a bargain.
There are some faint traces of Fosterage in the Hindoo law,
but substantially it has dropped out of the system. The vestiges
of Literary Fosterage are, however, tolerably abundant and very
plain. According to the general custom of India, the Brahmin
teacher of Brahmin pupils receives no payment for his services,
but the Hindoo law repeatedly reserves to him a remote succession
to their property. In each of four Brahminical law-tracts of
great authority, the Vyavahara Mayukha, the Daya-Bhaga, the
Mitakshara, and the Daya-Krama-Sangraha, the same ancient text is
quoted (sometimes but not always attributed to Manu), which is to
the effect that 'If there be no male issue the nearest kinsman
inherits; or in default of kindred, the preceptor, or failing him
the disciple.' One commentator explains that the preceptor is the
instructor in the Vedas, and another describes him as the person
who affords religious instruction to his pupil after investing
him with the Brahminical thread. These writers add that if
neither teacher nor pupil have survived the deceased his
fellow-student will succeed. Modern cases turning on these
peculiar rules of succession may be found in the Anglo-Indian Law
Reports.
We are thus brought face to face with a problem which
possesses interest in proportion to its difficulty -- the problem
of the origin of Castes. I cannot profess to do more than
approach it, but the opportunity of throwing even the least light
on a subject so dark ought not to be neglected. First let me say
that, among the comparatively few English writers who have
noticed the Brehon lawyers, some have loosely described them as a
caste. But this is an improper use of the word, though it is one
not uncommon in India. As regards the position of the Brehons in
very early times, the evidence of the Irish records is consistent
with the testimony of Caesar as to the literary class of the
Gallic Celts, and seems to show that anyone who went through a
particular training might become a Brehon. When, however, Ireland
began to be examined by English observers, it is plain that the
art and knowledge of the Brehon had become hereditary in certain
families who were attached to or dependent on the Chiefs of
particular tribes. There is nothing remarkable in this change,
which has obviously occurred with a vast number of trades and
professions in India, now popularly called castes. In societies
of an archaic type, a particular craft or kind of knowledge
becomes in time an hereditary profession of families, almost as a
matter of course. The difficulty with a native of India,
unsophisticated by English ideas, is not to find a reason why a
son should succeed to the learning of his father, and
consequently to his office and duties; his difficulty would
rather be to explain to himself why it should not be so, and how
the public interests could be consulted by any other arrangement.
The States governed by native Indian Princes are becoming a good
deal Anglicised, but still in them it is the practically
universal rule that office is hereditary. We do not, however,
thus arrive at a complete account of the growth of those castes
which are definite sections of great populations one only of
these castes really survives in India, that of the Brahmins, and
it is strongly suspected that the whole literary theory of Caste,
which is of Brahmin origin, is based on the existence of the
Brahmin caste atone. Now, the tendency of knowledge to become
hereditary is, by itself, consistent with a great variety of
religious and literary cultivation; but, as a fact, the Brahmins
of India are a remarkably homogeneous class, admitting (though no
doubt with considerable local qualifications) a general
brotherhood of all members of the order.
While, then, I cannot say that our scanty information
respecting changes in the status of the Brehon lawyers helps us
much towards a comprehension of the beginnings of Caste in the
true sense, I certainly think that we learn something more than
we knew before from the references in the Brehon tracts to
Literary Fosterage. They appear to me to give a new emphasis and
point to the rules of Hindoo Law respecting the remote succession
of the 'spiritual preceptor' to the property of families. It
seems as if in the most ancient state of both systems Literary or
Religious fatherhood had been closely assimilated to actual
fatherhood. Under these circumstances, if great schools of Vedaic
learning existed in India in very ancient times, as we have
strong reason to think they did, the relation between Teacher and
Pupil would closely follow and imitate the relation between
father and son. A great profession would thus be formed, with
stores of common knowledge; but the tie between the members would
not be purely intellectual; it would from the first be conceived
as of the nature of kinship. Such a system, as the old ideas
decayed, would tend infallibly to become one of real
consanguinity. The aptitude for sacred know ledge would come to
be thought to run in the blood of sons whose fathers had been
instructed in it, and none but such sons would be received into
the schools. A Caste would thus be formed, in the eyes of its
members the type of all Castes.
We have thus strong reason for thinking that societies still
under the influence of primitive thought labour under a certain
incapacity for regarding men, grouped together by virtue of any
institutions whatsoever, as connected otherwise than through
blood-relationship. We find that, through this barrenness of
conception, they are apt to extend the notion of consanguinity
and the language beginning in it to institutions of their own not
really founded on community of blood, and even to institutions of
foreign origin. We find also that the association between
institutions arising from true kinship and institutions based on
artificial kinship is sometimes so strong, that the emotions
which they respectively call forth are practically
indistinguishable. These phenomena of early thought and feeling
appear to me amply to account for some facts of Irish history
which nearly all English writers on Ireland have noticed with
extreme surprise or indignation. The expressions of Sir John
Davis, while stating that many of the early Anglo-Norman
adventurers settled in Ireland became in time pure Irish
chieftains, reflect the violent astonishment and anger which the
transformation excited in Englishmen. 'The English Colonists did
embrace and use the Irish custom, after they had rejected the
Civil and Honourable Laws and Customs of England, whereby they
became degenerate and metamorphosed like Nebuchadnezzar, who,
although he had the face of a man, had the heart of a beast; or
like those who had drunk of Circe's cup and were turned into very
beasts, and yet took such pleasure in their beastly manner of
life as they would not return to their shape of men again;
insomuch as within less time than the age of a man, they had no
marks or difference left among them of that noble nation from
which they were descended.' The fact, stated in this bitter
language, is not especially marvellous. We have seen the general
complexion of Irish society giving its colour to institutions of
all sorts -- associations of kinsmen shading off into assemblages
of partners and guild-brothers -- foster parentage, spiritual
parentage, and preceptorship taking their hue from natural
paternity -- ecclesiastical organisation blending with tribal
organisation. The Anglo-Norman captain who had thought to conquer
for himself an Irish signory passed insensibly in the same way
into the chieftain of an Irish tribe. The dependants who
surrounded him did not possibly draw any clear distinction
between the actual depositary of power and the natural depositary
of power, and, as the contagiousness of ideas is in proportion to
their fewness, it is intelligible that he too was affected by the
mental atmosphere in which he lived. Nor were other motives
wanting. The extreme poverty and constant distractions of Ireland
did not prevent an extraordinary amount of the pride of
authority, of the pride of birth, and even of the pride of wealth
from centring in the dignity of an Irish Chief.
I stated on a former occasion (Lecture 1. p. 8) that the
branch of law which we now call the Law of Distress occupies the
greatest part of the largest Brehon law-tract, the Senchus Mor.
The importance thus given to Distress is a fact of much
significance, and in this and the following Lecture I propose to
discuss the questions it raises and the conclusions it suggests.
The value of the precious discovery made by Niebuhr, when he
disinterred in 1816 the manuscript of Gaius, does not solely
arise from the new light which was at once thrown on the
beginnings of the legal system which is the mountain of the
greatest part of civilised jurisprudence. There are portions of
the treatise then restored to the world which afford us glimpses
of something older than law itself, and which enable us to
connect with law the practices dictated to barbarous men by
impulses which it has become the prime office of all law to
control. At the head of the passages in the work of Gaius which
allow the mind's eye to penetrate some little way into the chaos
out of which social order sprang, I place the fragmentary and
imperfect account, given near the commencement of the Fourth
Book, of the old Legis Actiones, which in the age of Gaius
himself had ceased to have more than an historical and
antiquarian interest.
Legis Actio, of which the exact meaning does not seem to have
been known to Gaius, may be conjectured to have been the
substantive form of the verbal expression, legem or lege agere,
and to have been equivalent to what we now call Procedure. It has
been several times observed that among the Legis Actiones are
included several proceedings which are not of the nature of
Actions or Suits, but are rather modes of executing decrees. The
fact seems to be that, by a course of change which may be traced
in the history of Roman law, one portion, 'Actio,' of the
venerable phrase 'Legis Actio' has been gradually disjoined from
the rest, and has come to denote that stage of the administration
of justice which is directly conducted by the Court, together, in
some judicial systems, with the stage immediately preceding it. I
suppose that originally lex, used of the assumed written basis of
Roman law, and legis actio, corresponded roughly to what many
centuries afterwards were called Substantive and Adjective Law,
the law declaring rights and duties and the rules according to
which the law declaring rights and duties is administered. On the
expression just mentioned, Adjective Law, with which Bentham and
his school have familiarised us, I will make a remark which
applies to much in the phraseology and classifications of the
Analytical Jurists, that it is correct and convenient according
to the ideas of their day, but that, if used of very old law, it
is apt to lead to an historical misconception. It would not be
untrue to assert that, in one stage of human affairs, rights and
duties are rather the adjective of procedure than procedure a
mere appendage to rights and duties. There have been times when
the real difficulty lay, not in conceiving what a man was
entitled to, but in obtaining it; so that the method, violent or
legal, by which an end was obtained was of more consequence than
the nature of the end itself. As a fact, it is only in the most
recent times or in the most highly developed legal systems that
remedies have lost importance in comparison with rights and have
ceased to affect them deeply and variously.
The first and in many respects the most interesting of these
ancient modes of proceeding is the Legis Actio Sacramenti, the
undoubted parent of all the Roman Actions, and consequently of
most of the civil remedies now in use in the world. Several years
ago I pointed out (Ancient Law, pp. 376, 377) that the technical
formalities appeared plainly, upon inspection, to be a
dramatisation of the Origin of Justice. 'Two armed men,' I said,
'are wrangling about some disputed property. The Praetor, vir
pietate gravis, happens to be going by and interposes to stop the
contest. The disputants state their case to him, and agree that
he shall arbitrate between them, it being arranged that the
loser, besides resigning the subject of the quarrel, shall pay a
sum of money to the umpire as remuneration for his trouble and
loss of time.' 'This interpretation,' I then added, 'would be
less plausible than it is, were it not that, by a surprising
coincidence, the ceremony described by Gaius as the imperative
course of proceeding in a Legis Actio is substantially the same
with one of the two subjects which the God Hephaestus is
Described by Homer as moulding into the First Compartment of the
Shield of Achilles.' Singe these passages were written, the
labours of more recent enquirers enable us to class this judicial
picture of the origin of one great institution, Civil Justice,
with other pictorial or dramatic representations of forgotten
practices which, in various parts of the world, survive in the
forms attending institutions of at least equal importance. It may
be seen, for example, from Mr McLennan's work on 'Primitive
Marriage,' that a large part of mankind still simulate in their
marriage ceremonies the carrying off the bride by violence, and
thus preserve the memory of the reign of force which, at all
events as between tribe and tribe, preceded everywhere the reign
of law. It is not at the same time to be supposed that these
long-descended dramas imply or ever implied any disrespect for
the institutions with which they are associated. In all
probability they intentionally commemorate not the evil but the
remedy for the evil: and, until they degenerate into meaningless
usages, they are enacted, not in honour of brute force, but in
honour of the institutions which superseded it, Marriage and
Civil Justice.
Almost every gesture and almost every set of formal words in
the Legis Actio Sacramenti symbolise something which, in some
part of the world or another, in some Aryan society or another,
has developed into an important institution. The claimant places
his hand on the slave or other subject of dispute, and this grasp
of the thing claimed, which is reproduced in the corresponding
procedure of the ancient Germans and which, from them, was
continued in various modified forms far down into the Middle
Ages, is an early example of that demand before action on which
all civilised systems of law insist. The wand, which the claimant
held in his hand, is stated by Gaius to have represented a spear,
and the spear, the emblem of the strong man armed, served as the
symbol of property held absolutely and against the world, not
only in the Roman but in several other Western societies. The
proceedings included a series of assertions and reassertions of
right by the parties, and this formal dialogue was the parent of
the Art of Pleading. The quarrel between plaintiff and defendant,
which was a mere pretence among the Romans, long remained a
reality in other societies, and, though its theory was altered,
it survived in the Wager of Battle which, as an English
institution, was only finally abolished in our fathers' day. The
interposition of the Praetor and the acceptance of his mediation
expanded into the Administration of Justice in the Roman State,
one of the most powerful of instrumentalities in the historical
transformation of the civilised world. The disputants staked a
sum of money -- the Sacramentum, from which the proceedings took
their name -- on the merits of their quarrel, and the stake went
into the public exchequer. The money thus wagered, which appears
in a singularly large number of archaic legal systems, is the
earliest representative of those Court-fees which have been a
more considerable power in legal history than historians of law
are altogether inclined to admit. The very spirit in which a
Legis Actio was conducted was that which, in the eyes of laymen,
has been most characteristic of lawyers in all historical times.
If, Says Gaius. you sued by Legis Actio for injury to your vines,
and called them vines, you would fail; you must call them trees,
because the text of the Twelve Tables spoke only of trees. The
ancient collection of Teutonic legal formulas, known as the
Malberg Gloss, contains provisions of precisely the same
character. If you sue for a bull, you will miscarry if you
describe him as a bull; you must give him his ancient juridical
designation of 'leader of the herd.' You must call the forefinger
the 'arrow'-finger, the goat the 'browser upon leeks.' There are
lawyers alive who can recollect when the English system of
Special Pleading, now just expiring, was applied upon principles
not remotely akin to these and historically descended from them.
The description given by Gaius of the Legis Actio Sacramenti
is followed by a lacuna in the manuscript. It was once occupied
with an account of the Judicis Postulatio, which was evidently a
modification of the older Sacramental Action by which this
ancient remedy was adapted to a particular class of cases. The
text of the treatise begins again with a description of the
Condictio, which is said by Gaius to have been created, but which
is believed to have been only regulated, by two Roman statutes of
the sixth century of Rome -- the Lex Silia and the Lex Calpurnia.
The Condictio, which afterwards developed into one of the most
useful of the Roman actions, originally derived its name from a
notice which the plaintiff gave the defendant to appear before
the Praetor in thirty days, in order that a Judex or referee
might be nominated; and immediately (as I myself think) on this
notice being given, the parties entered into a 'sponsio' and
'restipulatio,' that is, they laid a formal wager (distinct from
the stake called Sacramentum) on the justice of their respective
contentions. The sum thus staked, which was always equal to a
third of the amount in dispute, went in the end to the successful
litigant, and not, like the Sacramentum, to the State. Lawyers
wondered, Gaius tells us, that such an action should be needed
when property could have been recovered by the older and
unmodified procedure. Many technical answers to this question
have been given by modern commentators on Roman law, but we will
see whether a better explanation of it cannot be obtained by
approaching it from another side.
Gaius, leaving the Condictio, proceeds to discuss two of the
Legis Actiones, the Manus Injectio and the Pignoris Capio, which
cannot be made to square in any way with our modern conception of
an action. The Manus Injectio is expressly stated to have been
originally the Roman mode of execution against the person of a
judgment debtor. It has considerable historical interest, for it
was undoubtedly the instrument of the cruelties practised by the
Roman aristocracy on their defaulting plebeian debtors, and thus
it gave the first impetus to a series of popular movements which
affected the whole history of the Roman Commonwealth. The
Pignoris Capio also, possibly under a slightly altered name, was
a mode of execution in later times against property after decree;
but this was not its original purpose as a Legis Actio. It was at
first a wholly extra-judicial proceeding. The person who
proceeded by it seized in certain cases the goods of a
fellow-citizen, against whom he had a claim, but against whom he
had not instituted a suit. The power of seizure could be
exercised by soldiers against public officers bound to supply
them with pay, horse, or forage; and it could also be resorted to
by the seller of a beast for sacrifice against a defaulting
purchaser.. It was thus confined to claims of great urgency or of
highly sacred obligation; but it was afterwards extended to
demands for overdue arrears of public revenue. I am indebted to
Mr Poste for the observation that the ideal institutions of
Plato's Laws include something strongly resembling the Roman
Pignoris Capio; and here again it is a remedy for breach of
public duties connected with military service or religious
observance.
I take the Pignoris Capio as the immediate starting-point of
all which I am about to say on the subject of Ancient Civil
Procedure. First of all let us ask whether Gaius himself gives us
any hint of its meaning and significance in the primitive Roman
system. The clue is slender, but it seems to me sufficiently
traceable in the statement that the Pignoris Capio could be
resorted to in the absence of the Praetor and generally in that
of the person under liability, and also that it might be carried
out even when the Courts were not sitting.
Let us go back for a moment to the parent Legis Actio -- the
L. A. Sacramenti. Its venerable forms presuppose a quarrel and
celebrate the mode of settling it. It is a passing arbitrator
whose interposition is simulated by the Praetor. But suppose
there is no arbitrator at hand. What expedient for averting.
bloodshed remains, and is any such expedient reflected in that
ancient procedure which, by the fact of its existence, implies
that the shedding of blood has somehow been prevented?
I dare say I shall at the outset appear to be making a
trivial remark when I say that one method of gaining the object
is to lay a wager. Even now this is one of the commonest ways of
postponing a dispute as to a matter of fact, and the truth is
that the tendency to bet upon results lies extremely deep in
human nature, and has grown up with it from its remote infancy.
It is not everybody who, when his blood is hot, will submit to
have a quarrel referred to a third person present, much less to a
third person absent; but he will constantly do so, if he lays a
wager on it, and if, besides being found in the right, he has a
chance of receiving the amount staked. And this I suppose --
differing, I own, from several high authorities -- to be the true
significance of the Sponsio and Restipulatio, which we know to
have been of the essence of the ancient Roman Condictio, and of
the agreement to appear before the Praetor in thirty days. The
Legis Actio Sacramenti assumes that the quarrel is at once
referred to a present arbitrator; the Condictio that the
reference is to the decision of an arbitrator after thirty days'
interval, but meantime the parties have entered into a separate
wager on the merits of their dispute. We know that the liability
to an independent penalty attached to the suitor by Condictio
even when it had become one of the most important Roman actions,
and that it was still exacted in the age of Cicero.
There is yet another primitive contrivance by which, in the
absence of a present arbitrator, a quarrel may be prevented from
issuing in bloodshed. The claimant willing to go to arbitration
may, in the absence of his adversary, or if he be the stronger,
in his presence, take forcible possession of his moveable
property and detain it till he too submits. I believe this to
have been the true primitive office of the Pignoris Capio, though
the full evidence of my opinion will not be before you till I
have tracked the same institution through the twilight of other
legal systems. Among the Romans, even at the date of the Twelve
Tables, it had become (to employ Mr Tylor's phrase) a mere
survival, confined to cases when the denial of justice was
condemned by superstition or by a sense of the sternest public
emergency; and this was a consequence of the exceptionally rapid
development of Roman law and procedure, and of the exceptionally
early date at which the Roman tribunals became the organs of the
national sovereignty. You will see hereafter how much reason
there is for thinking that the progress of most societies towards
a complete administration of justice was slow and gradual, and
that the Commonwealth at first interfered through its various
organs rather to keep order and see fair play in quarrels than
took them, as it now does always and everywhere, into its own
hands. To this period, long forgotten among the Romans, those
peculiar rules pointed back which survived along with the
Pignoris Capio, and which provided for its exercise out of court
and during the judicial vacation.
I turn to the Teutonic societies for vestiges of a practice
similar to that which the Romans called Pignoris Capio. They seem
to be quite unmistakeable in that portion of our own English law
which is concerned with the power of Distraint or Distress and
with the connected legal remedy known as Replevin. The examples
of the right to distrain another man's property which are most
familiar to you are, I dare say, the landlord's right to seize
the goods of his tenant for unpaid rent, and the right of the
lawful possessor of land to take and impound stray beasts which
are damaging his crops or soil. The process by which the latter
right is made effectual retains far more of the ancient
institution than does distress for rent. For the peculiar power
of the landlord to distrain for rent, while it remains an
extrajudicial remedy, has been converted into a complete remedy
of its kind by a series of statutes comparatively modern. It has
always, however, been the theory of the most learned English
lawyers that distress is in principle an incomplete remedy; its
primary object is to compel the person against whom it is
properly employed to make satisfaction. But goods distrained for
rent are nowadays not merely held as a security for the
landlord's claim; they are ultimately put up for sale with
certain prescribed formalities, the landlord is paid out of the
proceeds, and the overplus is returned to the tenant. Thus the
proceeding has become merely a special method by which payment of
rent, and certain other payments which are placed on the same
footing, are enforced without the help of a Court of Justice. But
the distraint of cattle for damage still retains a variety of
archaic features. It is not a complete remedy. The taker merely
keeps the cattle until satisfaction is made to him for the
injury, or till they are returned by him on an engagement to
contest the right to distrain in an action of Replevin.
The practice of Distress -- of taking nams, a word preserved
in the once famous law-term withernam -- is attested by records
considerably older than the Conquest. There is reason to believe
that anciently it was resorted to in many more cases than our
oldest common-law authorities recognise; but about the reign of
Henry the Third, when it was confined to certain specific claims
and wrongs, the course of the proceeding was as follows: The
person assuming himself to be aggrieved seized the goods (which
anciently were almost always the cattle) of the person whom he
believed to have injured him or failed in duty towards him. He
drove the beasts to a pound, an enclosed piece of land reserved
for the purpose, and generally open to the sky. Let me observe in
passing that there is no more ancient institution in the country
than the Village-Pound. It is far older than the King's Bench,
and probably older than the Kingdom. While the cattle were on
their way to the pound the owner had a limited right of rescue
which the law recognised, but which he ran great risk in
exercising. Once lodged within the enclosure, the impounded
beasts, when the pound was uncovered, had to be fed by the owner
and not by the distrainor; nor was the rule altered till the
present reign. The distrainor's part in the proceedings ended in
fact with the impounding; and we have to consider what courses
were thereupon open to the person whose cattle had been seized.
Of course he might submit and discharge the demand. Or he might
tender security for its acquittal. Or again he might remain
obstinate and leave his beasts in the pound. It might happen,
however, that he altogether denied the distrainor's right to
distrain, or that the latter, on security being tendered to him
for the adjustment of his claim, refused to release the cattle.
In either of these casts the cattle-owner (at least at the time
of which we are speaking) might either apply to the King's
Chancery for a writ commanding the Sheriff to 'make replevin,' or
he might verbally complain himself to the Sheriff, who would then
proceed at once to 'replevy.' The process denoted by this ancient
phrase consisted of several stages. The Sheriff first of all
demanded a view of the impounded cattle; if this were refused, he
treated the distrainor as having committed a violent breach of
the King's peace, and raised the hue and cry after him. If the
cattle (as doubtless constantly was the case) had been driven to
a distance and out of his jurisdiction, the Sheriff sought for
cattle of the distrainor and seized them to double the value of
the beasts which were not forthcoming -- the 'taking in
withernam' of old English law. In more peaceable times, however,
and among law-abiding people, the deputy of the Crown was allowed
to see the cattle, which he immediately returned to their
original owner on a pledge to abide by the decision of a Court of
Justice. A day was then appointed for the trial, which took place
with the proceeding well known to lawyers as the Action of
Replevin. A great deal of technical learning has clustered round
it, but for our purposes it is enough to say that the plaintiff
in the action was the owner of the distrained cattle and the
defendant was the distrainor.
The comparative antiquity of the various steps in the
procedure are not, I think, difficult to detect. Nothing can be
more archaic than the picture presented by its more venerable
details. The seizure of the cattle, the rescue and the
counter-seizure, belong to the oldest practices of mankind. We
were carried back, by the Legis Actio Sacramenti of the Romans,
to a sudden fight over disputed property barely stopped by a
casual passer-by. Here, not in a city-community, but among the
ancient legal forms of a half-pastoral, half-agricultural people,
we come upon plain traces of a foray. But the foray which
survives in the old Law of Distress is not, like the combat of
the ancient Roman Action,a mere dramatic representation. Up to a
certain point it is a reality, and the most probable account of
its origin is that it is a genuinely disorderly proceeding which
the law steps in to regulate. You will see presently that there
are other independent reasons for thinking that some of the
earliest interferences of the power which we call the Law, the
State, or the King, with high-handed violence consisted, neither
in wholly forbidding it nor in assuming active jurisdiction over
the quarrel which provoked it, but in limiting it, prescribing
forms for it, or turning it to new purposes. Thus the next series
of incidents in the practice of distraint -- the impounding, the
stress laid upon pledge or security, and the acknowledgment of
continuing ownership which is implied in the liability of the
person distrained upon to feed the cattle, and in the rule that
the distrainor shall not work them -- belong to a newer range of
ideas which dictate the first attempts to moderate reprisals and
regulate revenge for wrong. Distress now becomes a semi-orderly
contrivance for extorting satisfaction. Many vestiges of this
ancient function remain. It has been observed by Blackstone and
others that the modified exemption of certain classes of goods
from distraint -- plough-oxen, for example, and tools of trade --
was not in its origin the least intended as a kindness to the
owner. It was entailed by the very nature of the whole
proceeding, since without the instruments of tillage or
handicraft the debtor could never pay his debt. A passage in the
'Dialogus de Scaccario' (ii. 14), prescribing the order in which
the goods of the King's debtors are to be sold, strongly bears
out this view.
Latest in the order of proceeding, and latest probably in
date, came the direct interposition of the State. The King steps
in, first. in what we should now call his administrative
capacity. His administrative deputy, the Sheriff, on complaint
made by their owner, Follows up the cattle, demands a sight of
them, raises the hue and cry if it be refused, and seizes twice
their number if the beasts have been driven away. Even when he
obtains his view, he can do nothing unless the cattle-owner,
denying the right of his adversary to distrain, is prepared with
security that he will try the question between them in a Court of
Justice. Thus tardily does that power make its appearance which
according to our notions should long since have appeared on the
scene, the judicial power of the Commonwealth. Its jurisdiction
is obviously acquired through the act of the Sheriff in restoring
the cattle upon pledge given. The distrainor has lost his
material security, the cattle. The owner of the cattle has become
personally, bound. And thus both are placed under a compulsion
which drives them in the end to a judicial arbitration.
Nearly six hundred years ago, the contrast between the
ancient proceedings in Replevin and suits conducted on what were
then modern principles was already striking. The second chapter
of the Statute of Westminster the Second is aimed at certain
contrivances by which tenants contrived to defeat the lord's
remedy by distress; and, in giving the King's Justices
jurisdiction in such cases, it goes on to say that such a
provision does not militate against the principle of the Common
Law which forbids the removal of suits to the Justices on the
petition of a defendant. 'For,' it adds, 'although at first sight
the tenant may seem to be plaintiff and the lord defendant, yet
in reality, regard being had to the fact that the lord distrains
and sues for services and dues behind, he is rather plaintiff or
complainant than defendant.' The action of Replevin is in fact an
excellent illustration of the difference between ancient and
modern juridical principles. According to ideas now confirmed in
us, the person who sets a Court of Justice in motion is the
person who complains of a wrong. In the case supposed, this is
not the man distrained upon but the man who distrains. He it is
who has suffered an injury for which he made reprisals on his
adversary's property. Yet it is his adversary who has to start
the legal procedure and to constitute himself plaintiff in the
Action of Replevin. The reason why a modern Court of Justice
would insist on taking the whole dispute into its own hands, and
dealing with it in its own way from the very beginning, is that,
having always the full command of the public force, it is sure of
being able to compel the submission of the defendant to its
jurisdiction and of coercing him in the end till he does justice,
however long the coercion may be delayed. But at the era to which
the procedure in distress originally belonged, the Court had no
such assurance of power; and hence the person assumed to have a
grievance is allowed to proceed according to the primitive
method, which has the advantage of giving the other side the
strongest inducements to call in the judicial authority of the
State and submit to its decision.
The information furnished to us respecting this primitive
procedure by the various bodies of Continental Teutonic law known
collectively as the Leges Barbarorum is of a very interesting
kind. Almost all of them contain references to Pignoratio or
distraint of goods. The Visigothic law expressly prohibits it;
and, at the other end of the scale, the Lombardic law has a trace
of that licence of distress which has survived in the English
Common-law and permits it after simple demand of payment. But the
Salic law, which the most learned Germans now believe to have
been drawn up at some period between the time at which Tacitus
wrote and the time at which the Franks broke into the Empire,
contains a series of very peculiar and instructive provisions on
the subject, which have been for the first time fully interpreted
by Sohm. Under this system, Distress is not yet a judicial
remedy; it is still an extrajudicial mode of redress, but it has
been incorporated with a regular and highly complex procedure. A
succession of notices have to be given in solemn form by the
complainant to the person of whom he complains, and whose
property he proposes to seize. Nor can he proceed to seizure
until he has summoned this person before the Popular Court, and
until the Popular Officer of the Court, the Thunginus, has
pronounced a formula licensing distraint. Then,and not till then,
he can make what we should call a distress upon his adversary. It
seems quite clear that, before the Conquest, attempts were made
in England to narrow the liberty of distraint by the same class
of restrictions which we find in the Salic Law and the allied
Teutonic bodies of usage. These provisions have their close
counterpart in the ordinance of Canute that no man is to take
nams unless he has demanded right three times in the Hundred; if
he obtain no justice the third time, he is to go to the
Shire-gemot; the shire is to appoint him a fourth time, and, if
that fails, he may take the distress.
It is to be remarked that the process of the Salic Law which
answers to our distress is especially a remedy in certain cases
of breach of contract. Distraint, the seizing of nams, was
certainly employed to enforce a similar class of demands under
old English law before the Conquest; and the practice seems to
have been known in Bracton's day, though the brevity of his
notice does not permit us to understand fully its course and
character. In this respect the Pignoration of the Continental
Teutonic law is more archaic than the distress with which we are
familiar in England, since the fragment of the system which has
survived in our Common law (and it is to this that it probably
owes its survival) was from the first pre-eminently a remedy by
which the lord compelled his tenants to render him their
services. But on the other hand it is interesting to observe that
our English distress is in some particulars of a more archaic
character than the corresponding compulsory process of the Leges
Barbarorum. Thus notice of the intention to distrain was never in
England essential to the legality of distress (Trent v. Hunt, 9
Exch. Rep. 20), although statute-law renders it necessary to make
a sale of the distrained property legal; and again, in the oldest
ascertainable state of our Common-law, though distraint sometimes
followed a proceeding in the lord's Court, yet it did not
necessarily presuppose or require it.
It should be understood that the Frankish procedure was
completely at the disposal of the complainant. It is not a
strictly judicial procedure, but rather a procedure regulating
extrajudicial redress. If the complainant observes the proper
forms, the part of the Court in licensing seizure is purely
passive. Even after the exhaustive examination which this part of
the Salic Law has undergone from Professor Sohm, it is very
difficult to say whether at any point of the procedure the
defendant had the opportunity of putting in a substantial
defence; but it seems certain that, whenever he could do this, he
appeared virtually as a plaintiff like the distrainee in our
Action of Replevin, and there is no doubt that, if he submitted
or was unsuccessful in attacking the proceedings of the other
side, he paid not only the original debt but various additional
penalties entailed by neglect to comply with previous notices to
discharge it. Such a procedure seems to us founded on the now
monstrous assumption that plaintiffs are always in the right and
defendants always in the wrong. Yet the assumption would not
perhaps have struck the earliest authors of legal improvement as
altogether monstrous, nor could they have quite comprehended the
modern principle which compels the complainant to establish at
all events a primâ facie case. With them, the man most likely to
be in the right would appear to be the man who faced the manifold
risks attending the effort to obtain redress, the man who
complained to the Popular Assembly, the man who cried for justice
to the King sitting in the gate. It is only when violent wrong
has ceased to be rife, when the dangers of contesting the
oppressions of powerful men have become insignificant, when the
law has been long and regularly administered according to
technical procedure, that unjust claims are seen to be hardly
less common than unjust refusals to satisfy them. In one
particular case, the complaint of the King, the old assumption
that complainants are presumably in the right was kept long alive
among us, and had much to do with the obstinate dislike of
lawyers to allowing prisoners to be defended by Counsel.
Gaius speaking of the Legis Actiones generally, observes that
'they fell into discredit, because through the excessive subtlety
of the ancient lawyers, things came to such a pass that he who
committed the smallest error failed altogether.'
Blackstone, many centuries afterwards, has the following
remark on the English Law of Distress: 'The many particulars
which attend the taking of a distress used formerly to make it a
hazardous kind of proceeding; for, if any one irregularity was
committed, it vitiated the whole.'
I quote these passages, not only on account of the curious
similarity of language between two writers of whom the later
could not possibly have read the earlier, but because the
excessive technicality of ancient law which they both notice goes
some way to explain the severity and one-sidedness of the old
Teutonic procedure. The power of seizing a man's property
extra-judicially in satisfaction of your demand was, as Professor
Sohm justly remarks, a sort of two-edged sword. You might bring
your adversary to the ground by it, but you were extremely likely
to injure yourself. For, unless the complainant who sought to
distrain went through all the acts and words required by the law
with the most rigorous accuracy, he in his turn, besides failing
in his object, incurred a variety of penalties, which could be
just as harshly exacted as his own original demand. The
difficulty of putting the procedure into operation thus at once
made disputants cautious in resorting to it, and seemed to men in
general to compensate for its inherent inequitableness. This
consideration, however, though it explains in part how the harsh
ancient law reconciled itself to the sense of right, is not by
itself sufficient to account for the form which it assumed in the
Teutonic Codes, or for the vitality of a portion of it amid our
own institutions.
I cannot doubt that the practice which I have called by the
general name of Distress kept its place in ancient Teutonic law
partly as a mere 'survival.' I have already insisted that one
great characteristic of the primitive ages was the fewness of
human ideas. Societies, just emerging from the savage state, had
been used to associate redress of wrong with the seizure of a
wrong-doer's goods, and they were unable mentally quite to
disconnect the two even when they began to regulate the practice.
They did not, therefore, supersede distress by a wholly new
system, but engrafted it on a later procedure, which occasionally
took the form so curiously preserved in its main features to our
own day by the English Common law, but which at a relatively
later date and more generally may be believed to have shaped
itself on the model of the rules observed by the Salian Franks.
It is not possible to explain all survivals by some
convenience which they incidentally serve. Some have undoubtedly
been continued by superstition, some by mere habit. But those
relics of ancient thought and conduct which have been kept alive
longest have generally had an usefulness of their own. Here the
private redress of wrong, taken into the legal procedure, served
to compel the appearance of the defendant and his submission to
jurisdiction at a time when judicial authority was yet in its
infancy, and when Courts of Justice could not as yet completely
and regularly command the aid of sovereign power. Gradually, as
the public force, the arm of the State, was more and more placed
at the disposal of tribunals, they were able more and more to
dispense with extrajudicial assistance. In the state of Teutonic
law represented by the Frankish Code, we find a specific class of
cases tried throughout judicially (in our modern sense of the
word) from the initial stage to the judgment; but the judgment is
not by its own force operative. If the defendant has expressly
promised to obey it, the Count or royal deputy, on being properly
summoned, will execute it; but if no such promise has been made,
the plaintiff has no remedy except an application to the King in
person. No long time, however, after the Franks have been settled
within the Empire, we find that mother step has been taken
towards the administration of justice on modern principles, and
now the royal deputy will execute the judgment even though there
has been no promise to submit to it. At this point Distress is
wholly taken out of the hands of private litigants and
extrajudicial seizure becomes judicial seizure. The change is
obviously a result of the growing vigour of Courts, greatly due
in our own country to the development of royal justice at the
expense of popular justice. Still English judicial proceedings
long savoured of the old practices. Every student of our ancient
English forms of proceeding will recollect on what small apparent
provocation the King constantly took the lands of the defendant
into his hands or seized his goods, simply to compel or perfect
his submission to the royal jurisdiction. It seems probable that
Distress was gradually lost in and absorbed by Attachment and
Distringas. The theory of Attachment now is that it is the taking
of property into the actual or constructive possession of the
judicial power, and the later course of change under which it has
faded into an occasional and exceptional proceeding, requiring to
be justified by special reasons, corresponds with the growing
confidence of Courts of Justice in their possession of
irresistible power confided to them by the sovereign. As regards
that fragment of the primitive institution which remains in our
law, I imagine that Distress would at most have become a mere
survival, confined perhaps to the impounding of stray cattle, if
several statutory innovations had not turned it into a convenient
extra-judicial remedy for landlords, by giving the distrainor a
power of sale which in old English law was limited to a few very
special demands. The modern theory of Distress is that a landlord
is allowed to distrain because by the nature of the case he is
always compelled to give his tenant credit, and that he can
distrain without notice because every man is supposed to know
when his rent is due. But this theory, though it explains the
continuance of Distress to our day, does not at all fit in with
the most ancient ideas on the subject, and could not indeed be
easily made to square with the practice of distraint even at a
date so comparatively late as that at which Bracton wrote. How
accidental is the association of Distress with the powers of
landlords may be seen from the fact that, though there are
plentiful traces of the institution in the ancient Scottish law,
the same practical results which the English system produces by
allowing landlords to distrain for rent are chiefly attained in
Scotland by applying to landlord and tenant the Romanised Law of
Hypothek.
The comparison of the various Teutonic bodies of law suggests
then to my mind as regards those systems, the following
conclusions respecting the historical development of the remedies
which grew out of the savage practice of violently seizing
property in redress for supposed wrong. Two alternative
expedients were adopted by nascent law. One of these consisted in
tolerating distraint up to a certain point; it was connived at so
far as it served to compel the submission of defendants to the
jurisdiction of Courts, but in all other cases it was treated as
wilful breach of the peace. The other was the incorporation of
distraint with a regular procedure. The complainant must observe
a great number of forms at his peril; but if he observes them he
can distrain in the end. In a still more advanced condition of
legal ideas, the tribunals take the seizure of land or goods into
their own hands, using it freely to coerce defendants into
submission. Finally, Courts of Justice resort to coercion before
judgment only on the rarest occasions, sure as they at last are
of the effectiveness of their process, and of the power which
they hold in deposit from the Sovereign Commonwealth.
I pass from the early law of procedure in the roman and
Teutonic societies to the corresponding branch of another.
ancient legal system which has been only just revealed to us, and
which, so far as its existence was suspected, was supposed until
lately to be separated by peculiarly sharp distinctions from all
Germanic bodies of usage.
Rather more than half of the Senchus Mor is taken up with the
Law of Distress. The Senchus Mor, as I told you, pretends to be a
Code of Irish law, and indeed to be that very Code which was
prepared under the influence of St. Patrick upon the introduction
of Christianity into Ireland. I added that in the present state
of our knowledge, no theory can be very confidently advanced as
to the date of this Brehon compendium. It may be that some such
revision of the pre-Christian law did take place; it may be that
the Brehon lawyers only conjectured that it must have taken
place; it may be that a tract of unusual dimensions and
proportionately valued by the Brehon law-school which happened to
possess it, came gradually to be associated with a name held in
pre-eminent honour or pre-eminently sacred, a process of which
there are believed to be several examples in the history of
eastern jurisprudence, These doubts, however, as to the true date
of the Senchus Mor do not take away from the significance and
instructiveness of the fact that in a volume of great antiquity,
of undoubted genuineness, and evidently thought by its possessors
to contain all that was important in the law, the Law of
Distress, now an extremely subordinate branch of our legal
system, occupies a space so extraordinarily large.
I borrow from the Editor of the First Volume of 'Ancient Laws
of Ireland,' the following epitome of the old Irish law of
distress as laid down in the Senchus Mor: --
'The plaintiff or creditor, having first given the proper
notice, proceeded, in the case of a defendant or debtor, not of
chieftain grade, to distrain. If the defendant or debtor were a
person of chieftain grade, it was necessary not only to give
notice, but also to "fast upon him." The fasting upon him
consisted in going to his residence and waiting there for a
certain time without food. If the plaintiff did not within a
certain time receive satisfaction for his claim, or a pledge
therefor, he forthwith, accompanied by a law-agent, witnesses,
and others, seized his distress. The distress, when seized, was
in certain cases liable to a Stay, which was a period varying.
according to fixed rules, during which the debtor received back
the distress, and retained it in his own keeping, the creditor
having a lien upon it. Such a distress is a "distress with time;"
but under certain circumstances and in particular cases an
"immediate distress" was made, the peculiarity of which was that
during the fixed period of the Stay the distress was not allowed
to remain in the debtor's possession, but in that of the
creditor, or in one of the recognised greens or pounds.
'If the debt was not paid by the end of the Stay, the
creditor took away the distress, and put it in a pound. He then
served notice of the distress on the debtor whom he had
distrained, letting him know where what was distrained was
impounded. The distress remained in the pound a certain period,
fixed according to its nature (dithim, translated "delay in
pound," is the name of this period). At the end of the delay in
pound, the Forfeiting Time began to run, during which the
distress became forfeited at the rate of three "seds" per day,
until entirely forfeited. If the entire value of the distress
thus forfeited was exactly equal to the original debt and the
subsequent expenses, the debt was liquidated; if it was less than
this, a second distress was taken for the difference; and, if
more, the overplus was returned. All this proceeding was managed
by the party himself, or his law-agent, with the several
witnesses of the various steps, and other necessary parties.
'But if, instead of allowing his cattle to go to pound, the
debtor gave a sufficient pledge, e.g., his son, or some article
of value, to the creditor, that he would within a certain time
try the right to the distress by law, the creditor was bound to
receive such pledge. If he did not go to law, as he so undertook,
the pledge became forfeited for the original debt. At any time,
up to the end of the "dithim," the debtor could recover his
cattle by paying the debt and such expenses as had been incurred.
But, if he neglected to redeem them until the "dithim" had
expired, then he could only redeem such as were still
unforfeited.'
The very existence in ancient Ireland of the law thus
summarised is almost enough by itself to destroy those reckless
theories of race which assert an original, inherent difference of
idea and usage between Teuton and Celt. The Irish system of
Distress is obviously, in all essential features, the Germanic
system. It wears, on its face, a very strong general resemblance
to the corresponding branch of Our Common Law; and I have seen
some very ingenious attempts to account for the differences
between the two by suggestions that the primitive contour of the
English law of Distress has been impaired. The object of such
speculations is to argue for the direct derivation of the English
set of rules from the Celtic; but it does not appear to the
necessary to resort to a supposition which has great and special
difficulties of its own. The virtual identity of the Irish law of
Distress with the Teutonic law is best brought out by comparing
it with the Teutonic systems of procedure collectively. Thus the
Distress of the Senchus Mor is not, like the Distress of the
English Common Law, a remedy confined in the main to demands of
the lord on his tenants; as in the Salic and other Continental
Germanic Codes, it extends to breaches of contract, and indeed,
so far as the Brehon law is already known, it would appear to be
the universal method of prosecuting claims of all kinds. The
Notice again to the person whose goods are to be distrained which
it strenuously insists upon, though not found in the surviving
English Common law, fills an important place, as I stated, in
other Teutonic collections of rules. So too the attendance of
witnesses is required by the Continental Codes; and, though the
presence of the Brehon law agent is peculiar to the Irish system
and very characteristic of it, certain persons having much the
same duties are required by some of the Teutonic systems to be
present during the process of distraint. Further, the Stay of
proceedings, which has been compared to an Attachment, seems to
me better explained by certain provisions of the 'Leges
Barbarorum.' Under some of them when a person's property is about
to be seized he makes a mimic resistance; under the Salic law, he
protests against the injustice of the attempt; under the
Ripuarian law, he goes through the expressive formality of
standing at his door with a drawn sword. Thereupon, the seizure
is interrupted and an opportunity is given for enquiring into the
regularity of the proceedings and, probably also, into the
justice of the claim. The Lien or charge upon the distrained
property, which the Irish law confers on the creditor during the
currency of the Stay, is not found in the Continental Teutonic
law in this exact shape; but, at a particular stage of the Salic
proceedings, the creditor has the power of interdicting the
debtor from selling or mortgaging any part of his property until
the debt has been satisfied. On the other hand, several features
of the Irish system, which are wholly absent from the Continental
Teutonic procedure, or very faintly marked in it, belong
conspicuously to the English law. Among these may be placed the
impounding, and the 'taking in withernam,' but the great.
Resemblance of all, and the common point of dissimilarity from
the most ancient of the Leges Barbarorum, lies in the fact that
the Irish procedure, like the English, requires neither
assistance nor permission from any Court of Justice. In all the
Teutonic bodies of custom except the English and the Lombardic,
even when the greatest latitude of seizure is allowed to
litigants out of Court, some. judicial person or body must be
applied to before they proceed to extremities. With us, however,
the entire seizure is completed before authority is called in;
and the Irish law has exactly the same peculiarity. Not only so,
but the Irish law corresponds to the English law of Distress in a
very advanced stage of development. It does not employ the
seizure of cattle merely as a method of extorting satisfaction.
It provides, as you have seen, for their forfeiture in discharge
of the Demand for which they were taken; and thus is
distinguished by an improvement which was only added to the
English law by statute after the lapse of several centuries.
The true difficulty in estimating the place of this Irish
procedure in the historical development of law arises from doubts
as to the part really played by the legal proceeding in which it
terminated. The English process of distress, wherever it was felt
to be unjust, led up to, and ended in, the action of replevin,
and the court, which ultimately tried the action, practically
acquired its jurisdiction through the interposition of the
Sheriff in restoring the cattle upon security given. No such
interference with a high hand as that of the Sheriff appears to
be contemplated by the Irish law. but the Brehon lawyer who ought
properly to accompany the distrainor is expressly stated by the
Senchus Mor to aid him 'until the decision of a Court.' ('Ancient
Laws of Ireland,' i. 85.) What was the proceeding thus referred
to? What authority had the Irish Courts at any time at which the
Brehon law was held in respect? What were these Courts? To what
extent did they command the public force of the sovereign State?
was there any sovereign power at any time established in any part
of Ireland which could give operative jurisdiction to Courts of
Justice and operative force to the law? All these questions -- of
which the last are in truth the great problems of ancient Irish
history -- must in some degree be answered before we can have
anything, like a confident opinion on the actual working of the
Law of Distress set forth at such length in the Senchus Mor.
The learned Editors of the various Introductions prefixed to
the official publications of Ancient Irish Law are plainly of
opinion that such jurisdiction as any Irish Courts possessed was,
to use the technical phrase, voluntary. The Law of Distress, in
this view, was clearly enough conceived by the Brehon lawyer, but
it depended for the practical obedience which it obtained on the
aid of public opinion and of popular respect for a professional
Caste. Its object was to force disputants to submit to what was
rather an arbitration than an action, before a Brehon selected by
themselves, or at most before some recognised tribunal advised by
a Brehon. At the same time, it would seem that there are ancient
Irish tracts or fragments of tracts in existence which describe
the ancient Irish as having had a most elaborate public
organisation, judicial as well as legislative. Dr Sullivan, in
his Introduction, admits that the information which has come down
to us on these subjects is very fragmentary, and so obscure that
it will be impossible to give a satisfactory account of them
until the whole of the law-fragments in Irish MSS. are published
or at least made accessible to scholars; but he nevertheless
believes in the historical reality of this organisation, and he
speaks (Introduction, pp. cclii. cclxii.) of the Irish Courts in
language of extremely modern tinge. Enough is known of Irish
history to make it very difficult to understand when this
elaborate judicial system can have existed; but a place is found
for it by attributing it to a period not only before the
Anglo-Norman invasions of Ireland, but before the Viking descents
on the Irish coasts. The safest course is certainly to reserve
one's opinion on the subject until the authorities for Dr
Sullivan's statements have been much more critically examined
than they have been; but I am bound to say that they are not so
inherently improbable, nor are Dr Sullivan's opinions so hard to
reconcile with the views of the Editors of the translations, as
persons unacquainted with legal history might suppose. There are
analogies to many of the tribunals described among the
rudimentary institutions of several communities. Such tribunals
might further be highly developed and yet their jurisdiction
might be only voluntary. Sohm appears to me to have proved that
the Frankish Popular Courts did not execute their own decrees; if
the defendant had promised to submit to an award, the local
deputy of the King might be required to enforce it, but, if there
had been no such promise, the plaintiff was forced to petition
the King in person. There is much reason in fact for thinking
that, in the earliest times and before the full development of
that kingly authority which has lent so much vigour to the arm of
the law in most Aryan communities, but which was virtually denied
to the Irish, Courts of Justice existed less for the purpose of
doing right universally than for the purpose of supplying an
alternative to the violent redress of wrong. Even then if we
suppose that the Ireland which is said to have enjoyed an
elaborate judicial organization was greatly ruder and wilder than
Irish patriots would probably allow it to have been, there is no
such inconsistency between the prevalence of disorder and the
frequency of litigation as would make them exclude one another.
The Norse literature, which Mr Dasent has popularised among us,
shows that perpetual fighting and perpetual litigation may go on
side by side, and that a highly technical procedure may be
scrupulously followed at a time when homicide is an everyday
occurrence. The fact seems to be that contention in Court takes
the place of contention in arms, but only gradually takes its
place; and it is a tenable theory that many of the strange
peculiarities of ancient law, the technical snares, traps, and
pitfalls with which it abounds, really represent and carry on the
feints, stratagems, and ambuscades of actual armed strife between
man and man, between tribe and tribe. Even in our own day, when a
wild province is annexed to the British Indian Empire, there is a
most curious and instructive rush of suitors to the Courts which
are immediately established. The arm of the law summarily
suppresses violence, and the men who can no longer fight go to
law instead, in numbers which sometimes make Indian officials
believe that there must be something maleficent in the law and
procedure which tempt men into Court who never saw a Court
before. The simple explanation is that the same natural impulse
is gratified in a new way; hasty appeals to a judge succeed
hurried quarrels, and hereditary law-suits take the place of
ancestral blood-feuds. If the transition from one state of
society to another in modern India were not sudden but gradual
and slow, as it universally was in the old Aryan world, we should
see the battle with technicalities going on in Court at the same
time that the battle was waged out of Court with sword and
matchlock.
When, however, we are considering the place in legal history
of the old Irish Law of Distress, the point to which we have to
attend is not so much the mere existence of Courts of Justice as
the effectiveness of their process, or in other words the degree
in which they command the public force of the Commonwealth. I
think I have shown it to be probable that, in proportion as
Courts grow stronger, they first take under their control the
barbarous practice of making reprisals on a wrongdoer by seizing
his property, and ultimately they absorb it into their own
procedure. Now, the Irish Law of Distress belongs in one respect
to a very early stage in this course of development, since it is
even more completely extrajudicial than is that fragment of the
primitive barbarous remedy which has survived among ourselves. On
the other hand, there are several particulars in which it is not
more but distinctly less archaic than the English Common law. The
'Notice' to the defendant, for which it provides -- the 'Stay,'
or temporary retention of the goods by the owner, subject to a
lien -- the witnesses who have to be present, and the skilled
legal adviser who has to attend throughout the proceedings --
belong to a range of ideas greatly more advanced than that under
which all these precautions are dispensed with. Even stronger
evidence of maturity is furnished by the almost inconceivable
multitude of rules and distinctions which the Senchus Mor applies
to every part of the proceedings; and our own experience shows
that the most remarkable feature of the old Irish law, the
forfeiture of the property taken in distress when the original
debt and the expenses of custody come up to its full value, has
its place among the latest improvements in jurisprudence.
Whatever, then, be the truth as to the Ireland of the golden
age, these characteristics of the Irish Law of Distress leave on
my mind a very distinct impression that it was brought to the
shape in which we find it amid a society in which the action of
Courts of Justice was feeble and intermittent. It says much for
the spirit of equity and reasonableness which animated the Brehon
lawyers who gave it its form, and much also for their ingenuity,
but suggests that they relied little on the assistance of Courts
and directed their efforts to making the most of a remedy which
was almost wholly extrajudicial. The comparison of the Teutonic
laws shows that they had a basis of Aryan custom to work upon;
but, while in other communities the superstructure on this
foundation was the work of Courts ever feeling themselves
stronger, in Ireland it seems to have been the work of lawyers
dependent in the main for the usefulness of their labours on
popular respect for their order. I do not affect to say how the
ancient law of Ireland is to be fitted to the ancient history. It
may be that the picture of judicial organisation found in some
law-tracts is, like the description of private law found in
others, rather a representation of what ought to be than of what
is or has been. It may be also that the law laid down in the
Senchus Mor is of much later date than the compilers of that
tract pretend, and that therefore it received its shape in times
of disturbance and confusion. But I cannot believe that it ever
synchronised with a period of judicial activity and efficiency.
From what I have said I think you will have collected the
chief points of difference between the Irish Law of Distress, as
laid down in the Senchus Mor, and the english Common Law of
Distress, as declared by the earliest authorities which our
Courts recognise. Both had the same origin, but the Irish
distraint was an universal, highly developed proceed ing employed
in enforcing all kinds of demands, while the corresponding
English remedy, though much less carefully guarded by express
rules, was confined to a very limited and special class of cases.
I have a melancholy reason for calling your attention to the
contrast. Edmund Spenser has spoken of it, in his 'View of the
State of Ireland,' and here is the passage: --
'There are one or two statutes which make the wrongful
distraining of any man's goods against the forme of Common Law to
be fellony. The which statutes seeme surely to have been at first
meant for the good of the realme, and for restrayning of a foul
abuse, which then reigned commonly among that people, and yet is
not altogether laide; that, when anyone was indebted to another,
he would first demand his debt, and, if he were not paid, he
would straight go and take a distress of his goods and cattell,
where he could find them to the value; which he would keep till
he were satisfied; and this the simple churl (as they call him)
doth commonly use to doe yet through ignorance of his misdoing,
or evil use that hath long settled among them. But this, though
it be sure most unlawful, yet surely me seems it is too hard to
make it death, since there is no purpose in the party to steal
the other's goods, or to conceal the distress, but he doeth it
openly for the most part before witnesses. And again the same
statutes are so slackly penned (besides there is one so
unsensibly contryved that it scarcely carryeth any reason in it)
that they are often and very easily wrested to the fraude of the
subject, as if one going to distrayne upon his own land or
tenement, where lawfully he may, yet if in doing thereof he
transgresse the least point of the Common Law, he straight
committeth fellony. Or if one by any other occasion take any
thing from another, as boyes sometimes cap one another, the same
is straight fellony. This is a very hard law.
Spenser goes on, in a passage which I need not quote in full,
to account for these statutes by a special provision in the
charters of most of the Anglo-Irish corporate towns. The English
law had not currency, he tells us, beyond the walls, and the
burgesses had the power conferred on them of distraining the
goods of any Irishman staying in the town or passing through it,
for any debt whatsoever. He suggests that the Irish population
outside was led in this way to suppose it lawful to distrain the
property of the townspeople. The explanation, if true, would be
sad enough, but we know that it cannot convey the whole truth,
and the real story is still sadder. The Irish used the remedy of
distress because they knew no other remedy, and the English made
it a capital felony in an Irishman to follow the only law with
which he was acquainted. Nay, those very subtleties of old
English law which, as Blackstone says, made the taking of
distress 'a hazardous sort of proceeding' to the civil
distrainor, might bring an Irishman to the gallows, if in
conscientiously attempting to carry out the foreign law he fell
into the smallest mistake. It is some small consolation to be
able, as one result of the inquiries we have been prosecuting, to
put aside as worthless the easy justification of those who pass
over these cruelties as part of the inevitable struggle between
men of different races. Both the Irish law, which it was a
capital crime to obey, and the English law, which it was a
capital crime to blunder in obeying, were undoubtedly descended
from the same body of usage once universally practised by the
forefathers of both Saxon and Celt.
Among the writers who have recognised the strong affinities
connecting the English and Irish Law of Distress, I find it
difficult to distinguish between those who believe in the direct
derivation of the English law from pre-existing Celtic customs
common to Britain and Ireland, and those who see a sufficient
explanation of the resemblances between the two sets of rules in
their common parentage. I am not at all prepared to deny that
recent researches, and particularly those into old French
customary law, render it easier to believe than it once was that
portions of primitive or aboriginal custom survive the most
desolating conquests. But I need scarcely say that the hypothesis
of the direct descent of any considerable branch of English law
from British usage is beset by extraordinary difficulties, of
which not the least is the curiously strong case which may also
be made out for the purely Roman origin of a good many
institutions and rules which we are used to consider purely
English and Germanic. On this last point a very interesting
little volume, which has attracted too little notice, Mr Coote's
'Neglected Fact in English History,' may be read with advantage,
and should be compared with the reply to its arguments, on the
whole a successful one, which Mr. Freeman published in
'Macmillan's Magazine, for July, 1870. The true rival of all
these theories of the derivation of one body of custom from
another is, of course, the theory of the common descent of all
from an original basis of usage which we must, provisionally at
all events, call Aryan. Confining ourselves to the practice which
we have been investigating, the remedy for supposed wrong by
distress, if there could be a doubt of its being a legacy from
the primitive Aryan usages, it would be removed by the remarkable
detail which connects the Irish with the Hindoo law. The Irish
rules of distraint very strongly resemble the English rules, less
strongly resemble the Continental Teutonic rules, but they
include one rule not found in any Teutonic Code, almost
unintelligible in the Irish system, but known to govern conduct
even at this hour all over the East, where its meaning is
perfectly clear. This is the rule that a creditor who requires
payment from a debtor of higher rank than himself shall 'fast
upon him.' What possible explanation will cover all the fact
except that the primitive Aryans bequeathed the remedy of
distress to the communities which sprang from them, and that
varieties of detail have been produced by what Dr. Sullivan, in
his Introduction, has happily called dynamical influences?
Here is the leading provision of the Senchus Mor on the
subject (i. 113): --
'Notice precedes every distress in the case of the inferior
grades except it be by persons of distinction or upon persons of
distinction. Fasting precedes distress in their case. He who does
not give a pledge to fasting is an evader of all; he who
disregards all things shall not be paid by God or man.'
Mr. Whitley Stokes was the first, I believe, to point out
that the institution here referred to was identical with a
practice diffused over the whole East, and called by the Hindoos
'sitting dharna.' I will presently read you a passage in which
the proceeding is described as it was found in India before the
British government, which has always regarded it as an abuse, had
gone far in its efforts to suppress it. But perhaps the most
striking examples of the ancient custom are to be found at this
day in Persia, where (I am told) a man intending to enforce
payment of a demand by fasting begins by sowing some barley at
his debtor's door and sitting down in the middle. The symbolism
is plain enough. The creditor means that he will stay where he is
without food, either until he is paid or until the barley-seed
grows up and gives him bread to eat.
The corresponding Indian practice is known, I before stated,
as 'sitting dharna' -- dharna, according to the better opinion,
being exactly equivalent to the Roman 'capio,' and meaning
'detention' or 'arrest.' Among the methods of enforcing payment
of a debt described in the collection of rules attributed to the
semi-divine legislator, Manu (viii. 49), is one which Sir William
Jones renders 'the mediation of friends;' but more recent
Sanscrit scholars assert that the expression of the original text
signifies 'dharna.' And in the Vyavahara Mayukha, a Brahminical
law-book of much authority, Brihaspiti, a juridical writer
sometimes classed with Manu, is cited as enumerating, among the
lawful modes of compulsion by which the debtor can be made to
pay, 'confining his wife, his son, or his cattle, or watching
constantly at his door.' This remarkable passage not only
connects Hindoo law with Irish law through the reference to
'watching constantly at the door,' but it connects it also with
the Teutonic, and among them with the English bodies of custom,
by speaking of the distraint of cattle as a method of enforcing a
demand. We have not in the Western world, so far as I am aware,
any example of so strong a form of distress as seizing a man's
wife or children, but it is somewhat curious that we have
evidence of its having been common in ancient Ireland to give a
son as a pledge to the creditor for the purpose of releasing the
distrained property.
Lord Teignmouth has left us a description (in Forbes'
'Oriental Memoirs,' ii. 25) of the form which the 'watching
constantly at the door' of Brihaspiti had assumed in British
India before the end of the last century. 'The inviolability of
the Brahmin is a fixed principle with the Hindoos, and to deprive
him of life, either by direct violence or by causing his death in
any mode, is a crime which admits of no expiation. To this
principle may be traced the practice called dharna, which may be
translated caption or arrest. It is used by the Brahmins to gain
a point which cannot be accomplished by any other means, and the
process is as follows: The Brahmin who adopts this expedient for
the purpose mentioned proceeds to the door or house of the person
against whom it is directed, or wherever he may most conveniently
arrest him; he then sits down in dharna with poison or a poignard
or some other instrument of suicide in his hand, and threatening
to use it if his adversary should attempt to molest or pass him,
he thus completely arrests him. In this situation the Brahmin
fasts, and by the rigour of the etiquette the unfortunate object
of his arrest ought to fast also, and thus they both remain till
the institutor of the dharna obtains satisfaction. In this, as he
seldom makes the attempt without the resolution to persevere, he
rarely fails; for if the party thus arrested were to suffer the
Brahmin sitting in dharna to perish by hunger, the sin would for
ever lie upon his head. This practice has been less frequent of
late years, since the institution of the Court of Justice at
Benares in 1793; but the interference of the Court and even of
the Resident has occasionally proved insufficient to check it.'
You will observe that the old Brahminical writer merely
speaks of confining a man to his house by 'watching constantly at
the door' as one among several modes of extorting satisfaction.
He classes it with forms of distraint more intelligible to us --
the seizure of the debtor's cattle, of his wife, or of his child.
Though the ancient rule has not descended to us along with its
original context, we need not doubt that even in the earliest
times it was enforced by a supernatural sanction, since every
violation of the Brahminical Code was regarded by its authors not
only as a civil offence but as a sin. Thus a Brahmin might quite
well be conceived as saying with the writer in the Senchus Mor,
'He who does not give a pledge to fasting is an evader of all; he
who disregards all things shall not be paid by God or man.' Many
centuries then elapse, which it would be vain to calculate, and
almost in our own day we find the ancient usage practised in
India, but with modifications corresponding to a great deal of
change which is suspected to have occurred in Hindoo theology.
The indefinite supernatural penalty has become the definite
supernatural penalty incurred by destroying life, and
particularly human life. The creditor not only 'watches at the
door,' but kills himself by poison or dagger if the arrest is
broken, or by starvation if payment is too long delayed. Finally,
we have the practice described by Lord Teignmouth as one
peculiarly or exclusively resorted to by Brahmins. The sanctity
of Brahminical life has now in fact pretty much taken, in Hindoo
idea, the place once occupied by the sanctity of human life, and
'sitting dharna,' when the English law first endeavoured to
suppress it, was understood to be a special mode of oppression
practised by Brahmins for a consideration in money This is the
view taken of it by the Indian Penal Code, which condemns it in
the following terms (s. 508): --
'Whoever voluntarily causes... any person to do anything
which that person is not legally bound to do... by inducing...
that person to believe that he... will become by some act of the
offender an object of Divine displeasure, if he does not do the
thing which it is the object of the offender to cause him to
do... shall be punished with imprisonment, &c.'
It seems to me that a reasonable explanation may be given of
the origin of these practices which now seem so strange. Let us
not forget that all forms of Distress, the seizure of wife,
child, or cattle, even when wholly unregulated by law, were
improvements on older custom. The primitive proceeding was
undoubtedly the unceremonious, unannounced, attack of the tribe
or the man stung by injury on the tribe or the man who had
inflicted it. Any expedient by which sudden plunder or slaughter
was adjourned or prevented was an advantage even to barbarous
society. Thus, it was a gain to mankind as a whole when its
priests and leaders began to encourage the seizure of property or
family, not for the purpose of permanent appropriation, but with
a view to what we should now not hesitate to call extortion.
Similarly, it was a step forwards when men learned to pause
before attacking instead of attacking at once. We are told, in
the Compendium of Kafir Laws and Customs published by Mr Dugmore
and other missionaries (p. 38), that the regular procedure of a
Kafir law-suit simulates an expedition in force of the plaintiff
and his friends against the village to which the defendant
belongs. 'On their arrival they sit down together in some
conspicuous position and await quietly the result of their
presence. This... is the signal for mustering all the adult male
residents that are forthcoming. These accordingly assemble and
also sit down within conversing distance.' After long silence a
conversation ensues, and the proceeding, which is a perfectly
peaceable one, is continued by a long series of technical
formalities and intricate pleadings. This silent pause of the
attacking party is an early form of Notice, in itself one of the
most valuable of institutions; and with it is connected another
primitive contrivance, shutting a man up in his house till he
gives satisfaction, instead of setting on him at once. A very
striking illustration of it is found in a law of Alfred, familiar
to historical scholars (Kemble, 'Saxons,' i. 272; Thorpe,
'Ancient Laws,' i. 91): --
'Let the man who knows his foe to be homesitting fight not
before he have demanded justice of him. If he have power to beset
his foe and besiege him in his house, let him keep him there for
seven days but not attack him if he will remain indoors. If then,
after seven days, he be willing to surrender and give up his
weapons, let him be kept safe for thirty days, and let notice be
given to his kinsmen and friends. But if the plaintiff have not
power of his own, let him ride to the Ealdorman, and, if the
Ealdorman will not aid him, let him ride to the King before he
fights.' The passage ends with a provision of which the spirit,
strange to say, survives in the modern Code making the loudest
claim to civilised principle, the Code Napoléon (Code Pénal, s.
324), to the effect that if the man who is homesitting be really
shut up in his house with the complainant's wife, daughter, or
sister, he may be attacked and killed without ceremony.
The object of the Law of Alfred is plainly the same with that
aimed at by the ancient rule of Brihaspiti. The man who, if
nature had her way, would be slain at once, is shut up in his
house but left otherwise unharmed till he or his kinsmen pay the
debt or compound for the money. The English rule is to be
enforced by the civil power, the Ealdorman or the King; the
Hindoo Brahminical rule by the fear of punishment in another
world. The Irish law-tract retains the Brahminical rule as an
alternative in certain cases to Notice. But an institution which
was perfectly intelligible in a society which included an order
of lawyers who were also priests has lost all meaning when this
society has been introduced by Christianity to a wholly new set
of religious ideas.
The course of our enquiry has led us backwards and forwards
between the extreme Easterly and the extreme Westerly branches of
the Aryan race. Let me now add one word to connect the Eastern
usage with the most ancient law of the community which once
occupied with its government nearly the whole space between the
two. 'Sitting dharna,' placed under the ban of British law,
chiefly survives in British india in an exaggerated air of
suffering worn by the creditor who comes to ask a debtor of
higher rank for payment, and who is told to wait. But it is still
common in the Native Indian States, and there it is pre-eminently
an expedient resorted to by soldiers to obtain arrears of pay.
You will remember that the 'pignoris capio' of the Romans is
stated by Gaius to have survived as a remedy in two classes of
cases, one of them being the default of a military paymaster.
The subject on which I am about to speak may perhaps convey
one lesson. It may serve as a caution against the lax employment
of the words 'ancient' and 'modern,' There are few persons, I
suppose, who, approaching the Settled Property of Married Women
without previous knowledge of its history, would not pronounce it
one of the most modern of subjects. It has given rise to vehement
controversy in our own day; some of the questions which it
suggests are not yet solved; and there are many here, I dare say,
who believe that they remember the first dawn of sound ideas on
these questions. Yet, as a matter of fact, the discussion of the
settled property of married women is a very old discussion. I do
not indeed say, considering the vast antiquity now claimed for
the human race, that our very first forefathers troubled
themselves about the matter; but nothing can be more certain than
that very soon after those divisions of mankind which were
destined to ultimate greatness are seen in possession of the
institution which was the one condition of their progress to
civilisation -- the Family -- they are discerned grappling with
the very same problem, no doubt in an early form, which we
ourselves have hardly yet succeeded in solving. This assertion, I
may observe, is less incredible to a Frenchman, or indeed to a
citizen of any Continental State, than it is possibly to an
Englishman. The law of the Continent on the proprietary relations
of husband and wife is in the main Roman law, very slightly
transmuted; and through the institutions of the Romans the
history of this branch of law may be traced to the earliest
institutions of so much of the human race as has proved capable
of civilisation.
The Roman and Hindoo systems of law from which I propose to
illustrate my subject are very far indeed from being the only
sources from which information can be gathered concerning the
infancy of mankind, or even concerning the Aryan race of men. But
the evidence supplied by each of them is highly authentic, and,
while both of them run back to what may fairly be called a vast
antiquity, they both assume at their starting-point the existence
of the institution, by no means apparently universal among savage
men, out of which, as I said, all civilisation has grown -- the
Family. I need scarcely add that, even for historical purposes,
their value is very unequal.
There is no history so long, so continuous, and so authentic
as that of the Roman Law; and yet it is not a little remarkable
that till about half a century ago it was systematically treated,
except by a small minority of jurists, as if it had no history at
all. This was a consequence of its great juridical perfection.
Let me pause to observe that, considering the time and pains
spent in acquiring the Latin language, it is much to be regretted
that so little is known of the chief branch of Latin literature.
For it is really so expressed, and so put together, as to deserve
the name of literature. Moreover, it was the only literature of
the Romans which has any claim to originality; it was the only
part of their literature in which the Romans themselves took any
strong interest; and it is the one part which has profoundly
influenced modern thought. One result, however, of its symmetry
and lucidity was that it was long regarded as a birth of pure
intellect, produced, so to speak, at a single effort. Those who
attempted to construct a history for it were few, and not of the
highest credit. But it happened that in 1816, the great German
historian, Niebuhr, travelling in Italy, had his attention
attracted at Verona to a manuscript of one of the Fathers, under
the letters of which ancient writing appeared. This manuscript,
when deciphered, proved to be a nearly perfect copy of an
educational work, written in the second century of our era, for
young Roman students of law, by one of the most famous of Roman
lawyers, Gaius or Caius. At that period Roman jurisprudence
retained enough of the traces of its most ancient state for it to
be necessary that they should be explained to young readers by
the author of such a treatise; and it thus became possible to
reconstruct, from the book of Gaius, the whole past history of
Roman law with some completeness Certainly, without Niebuhr's
discovery the subject of this lecture could never have been
understood, or its original outline restored.
Hindoo law, which I have placed by the side of Roman law,
calls assuredly for no eulogy. It is full of monstrous
iniquities, and has been perverted in all directions by priestly
influence. But then a great deal of it is undoubtedly of
prodigious antiquity, and, what is more important, we can see
this ancient law in operation before our eyes. British
legislation has corrected some of its excesses, but its
principles are untouched, and are still left to produce some of
their results. French law, as I said, is Roman law a little
altered, but then it is the Roman law in its matured, developed,
and refined condition, and the ancient institutions of the Romans
are only seen through it dimly. But some of the institutions
which the Romans and Hindoos once had in common may be seen
actually flourishing in India, under the protection of English
Courts of Justice.
The two societies, Roman and Hindoo, which I take up for
examination, with the view of determining some of their earliest
ideas concerning the property of women, are seen to be formed at
what for practical purposes is the earliest stage of their
history, by the multiplication of a particular unit or group, the
Patriarchal Family. There has been much speculation of late among
writers belonging to the school of so-called pre-historic inquiry
as to the place in the history of human society to which this
peculiar group, the Patriarchal Family, is entitled. Whether,
however, it has existed universally from all time -- whether it
has existed from all time only in certain races -- or whether in
the races among whose institutions it appears, it has been formed
by slow and gradual development -- it has, everywhere, where we
find it, the same character and composition. The group consists
of animate and inanimate property, of wife, children, slaves,
land, and goods, all held together by subjection to the despotic
authority of the eldest male of the eldest ascending line, the
father, grandfather, or even more remote ancestor. The force
which binds the group together is Power. A child adopted into the
Patriarchal family belongs to it as perfectly as the child
naturally born into it, and a child who severs his connection
with it is lost to it altogether. All the larger groups which
make up the primitive societies in which the Patriarchal family
occurs, are seen to be multiplications of it, and to be, in fact,
themselves more or less formed on its model.
But, when first we view the Patriarchal Family through
perfectly trust worthy evidence, it is already in a state of
decay. The emancipation or enfranchisement of male children from
parental power by the parents' voluntary act has become a
recognised usage, and is one among several practices which
testify a relaxation of the stricter ideas of a more remote
antiquity. Confining our attention to women, we find that they
have begun to inherit a share of the property of the family
concurrently with their male relatives; but their share appears,
from several indications, to have been smaller, and they are
still controlled both in the enjoyment of it and in the disposal.
Here, however, we come upon the first trace of a distinction
which runs through all legal history. Unmarried women, originally
in no different position from married women, acquire at first a
much higher degree of proprietary independence. The unmarried
woman is for life under the guardianship of her male relatives,
whose primitive duty was manifestly to prevent her alienating or
wasting her possessions, and to secure the ultimate reversion of
these possessions to the family to whose domain those possessions
had belonged. But the powers of the guardians are undergoing slow
dissolution through the two great sapping agencies of
jurisprudence, Legal Fictions and Equity. To those who are alive
to the permanence of certain legal phenomena there is no more
interesting passage in ancient law than that in which the old
lawyer Gaius describes the curious forms with which the
guardian's powers were transferred to a trustee, whose trust was
to exercise them at the pleasure of the ward. Meantime, there can
be no reasonable doubt that among the Romans, who alone supply us
with a continuous history of this branch of jurisprudence, the
great majority of women became by marriage, as all women had
originally become, the daughters of their husbands. The Family
was based, less upon actual relationship than upon power, and the
husband acquired over his wife the same despotic power which the
father had over his children. There can be no question that, in
strict pursuance of this conception of marriage, all the wife's
property passed at first absolutely to the husband, and became
fused with the domain of the new family; and at this point
begins, in any reasonable sense of the words, the early history
of the property of married women.
The first sign of change is furnished by the employment of a
peculiar term to indicate the relation of husband to wife, as
different from the relation of father to child, or master to
slave. The term, a famous one in legal history, is manus, the
Latin word for 'hand,' and the wife was said convenire in manum,
to come under the hand of her husband. I have elsewhere expressed
a conjectural opinion that this word manus or hand, was at first
the sole general term for patriarchal power among the Romans, and
that it became confined to one form of that power by a process of
specialisation easily observable in the history of language. The
allotment of particular names to special ideas which gradually
disengage themselves from a general idea is apparently determined
by accident. We cannot give a reason, other than mere chance, why
power over a wife should have retained the name of manus, why
power over a child should have obtained another name, potestas,
why power over slaves and inanimate property should in later
times be called dominium. But, although the transformation of
meanings be capricious, the process of specialisation is a
permanent phenomenon, in the highest degree important and worthy
of observation. When once this specialisation has in any case
been effected I venture to say that there can be no accurate
historical vision for him who will not, in mental contemplation,
re-combine the separated elements. Taking the conceptions which
have their root in the family relation -- what we call property,
what we call marital right, what we call parental authority, were
all originally blended in the general conception of patriarchal
power. If, leaving the Family, we pass on to the group which
stands next above it in the primitive organisation of society --
that combination of families, in a larger aggregate, for which at
present I have no better name than Village Community -- we find
it impossible to understand the extant examples of it, unless we
recognise that, in the infancy of ideas, legislative, judicial,
executive, and administrative power are not distinguished, but
considered as one and the same. There is no distinction drawn in
the mind between passing a law, affirming a rule, trying an
offender, carrying out the sentence, or prescribing a set of
directions to a communal functionary. All these are regarded as
exercises of an identical power lodged with some depositary or
body of depositaries. When these communities become blended in
the larger groups which are conveniently called political: the
re-combination of ideas originally blended becomes infinitely
more difficult, and, when successfully effected, is among the
greatest achievements of historical insight. But I venture to say
that, whether we look to that immortal system of village
communities which became the Greek or Hellenic world -- or that
famous group of village-communities on the Tiber, which, grown
into a legislating empire, has influenced the destinies of
mankind far more by altering their primitive customs than by
conquering them -- or to the marvellously complex societies to
which we belong, and in which the influence of the primitive
family and village notions still makes itself felt amid the mass
of modern thought -- still I venture to say, that one great
secret for understanding these collections of men, is the
reconstruction in the mind of ancient, general, and blended ideas
by the re-combination of the modern special ideas which are their
offshoots.
The next stage in the legal history of Roman civil marriage
is marked by the contrivance, very familiar to students of Roman
law, by which the process of 'coming under the hand' was
dispensed with, and the wife no longer became in law her
husband's daughter. From very early times it would appear to have
been possible to contract a legal marriage by merely establishing
the existence of conjugal society. But the effect on the wife of
continuous conjugal society was, in old Roman law, precisely the
same as the effect on a man of continuous servile occupation in a
Roman household. The institution called Usucapion, or (in modern
times) Prescription, the acquisition of ownership by continuous
possession, lay at the root of the ancient Roman law, whether of
persons or of things; and, in the first case, the woman became
the daughter of the chief of the house; in the last case the man
became his slave. The legal result was only not the same in the
two cases because the shades of power had now been discriminated,
and paternal authority had become different from the lordship of
the master over the slave. In order, however, that acquisition by
Usucapion might be consummated, the possession must be
continuous; there was no Usucapion where the possession had been
interrupted -- where, to use the technical phrase (which has had
rather a distinguished history), there had been usurpation, the
breaking of usus or enjoyment. It was possible, therefore, for
the wife, by absenting herself for a definite period from her
husband's domicile, to protect herself from his acquisition of
paternal power over her person and property. The exact duration
of the absence necessary to defeat the Usucapion -- three days
and three nights -- is provided for in the ancient Roman Code,
the Twelve Tables, and doubtless the appearance of such a rule in
so early a monument of legislation is not a little remarkable: It
is extremely likely, as several writers on the ancient law
conjectured, that the object of the provision was to clear up a
doubt, and to declare with certainty what period of absence was
necessary to legalise an existing practice. But it would never do
to suppose that the practice was common, or rapidly became
common. In this, as in several other cases, it is probable that
the want of qualification in the clause of the Twelve Tables is
to be explained by the reliance of the legislator on custom,
opinion, or religious feeling to prevent the abuse of his
legislation. The wife who saved herself from coming under marital
authority no doubt had the legal status of wife, but the Latin
antiquaries evidently believed that her position was not at first
held to be respectable. By the time of Gaius, however, any
association of imperfect respectability with the newer form of
marriage was decaying or had perished; and, in fact, we know that
marriage, 'without coming under the hand,' became the ordinary
Roman marriage, and that the relation of husband and wife became
a voluntary conjugal society, terminable at the pleasure of
either party by divorce. It was with the state of conjugal
relations thus produced that the growing Christianity of the
Roman world waged a war ever increasing in fierceness; yet it
remained to the last the basis of the Roman legal conception of
marriage, and to a certain extent it even colours the Canon law
founded though it be, on the whole, on the sacramental view of
marriage.
For our present purpose it is necessary to regard this newer
marriage just when it had superseded the ancient and stricter
usages of wedlock, and just before it began to be modified by the
modern and much severer principles of the Christian community.
For at this point in the history of marriage we come upon the
beginnings of that system of settling the property of married
women which has supplied the greatest part of Continental Europe
with its law of marriage settlement. It appears an immediate
consequence from thoroughly ascertained legal principles that, as
soon as the wife ceased to pass by marriage into her husband's
family, and to become in law his daughter, her property would no
longer be transferred to him. In the earlier period of Roman law,
this property, present and prospective, would have remained with
her own family, and, if she was no longer under direct parental
authority, would have been administered by her guardians for the
behoof of her male relatives. As we know, however, and as I
before stated, the power of guardians was gradually reduced to a
shadow. The legal result would seem to have been that the woman
would be placed in the same position as a French wife at this day
under what the French Code calls the régime of biens séparés, or
as an English wife whose property has been secured to her
separate use by an appropriate marriage settlement or by the
operation of the new Married Women's Property Act. But, though
this was the legal consequence, it would be a social anachronism
to assume that in practice it followed rapidly or generally. The
original object of the marriage 'without coming under the hand'
was doubtless to prevent the acquisition of excessive proprietary
power by the husband, not to deprive him of all such power, and
indeed the legal result of this marriage, unless practically
qualified in some way, would unquestionably have been far in
advance of social feeling. Here, then, we come upon an
institution which, of all purely artificial institutions, has had
perhaps the longest and the most important history. This is the
dos, or dotal estate, something very different from our 'dower.'
It has become the dot of French law, and is the favourite form of
settling the property of married women all over the Continent of
Europe. It is a contribution by the wife's family, or by the wife
herself, intended to assist the husband in bearing the expenses
of the conjugal household. Only the revenue belonged to the
husband, and many minute rules, which need not be specified here,
prevented him from spending it on objects foreign to the purpose
of the settlement. The corpus or capital of the settled property
was, among the Romans (as now in France), incapable of
alienation, unless with the permission of a court of justice. If
any part of the wife's property was not settled on her as dos, it
became her parapherna. Parapherna means something very different
from our 'paraphernalia,' and is the biens separés of French law.
It was that portion of a wife's property which was held by her
under the strict law applicable to a woman marrying without
'coming under the hand.' The authority of her guardians having
died out, and this part of her property not having, by the
assumption, been conveyed to the husband as dos, it remained
under her exclusive control, and at her exclusive disposal. It is
only quite recently, under the Married Women's Property Act, that
we have arrived at a similar institution, since money settled to
a wife's separate use, though practically the same thing,
required a settlement to create it.
I have now abridged a very long, and, in some portions, a
very intricate history. The Roman law began by giving all the
wife's property to the husband, because she was assumed to be, in
law, his daughter. It ended in having for its general rule that
all the wife's property was under her own control, save when a
part of it had been converted by settlement into a fund for
contributing to the expenses of the conjugal household. But, no
doubt, the exception to the general rule was the ordinary
practice. In all respectable households, as now on the Continent,
there was a settlement by way of dos. Not that we are to suppose
there was among the Romans any such form of contract as we are
accustomed to under the name of Marriage Settlement. The
mechanism was infinitely simpler. A few words on paper would
suffice to bring any part of the wife's property under the
well-ascertained rules supplied by the written law for dotal
settlements, and nothing more than these words would be needed,
unless the persons marrying wished to vary the provisions of the
law by express agreement. This simple, but most admirable,
contrivance of having, so to speak, model settlements set forth
ready made in the law, which may be adopted or not at pleasure,
characterises the French Code Napoléon, and it was inherited by
the French from the Romans.
Warning you that the account which I have given you of the
transitions through which the Roman law of settled property
passed, is, from the necessity of the case, fragmentary, I pass
to the evidence of early ideas on our subject which is contained
in the Hindoo law. The settled property of a married woman,
incapable of alienation by her husband, is well-known to the
Hindoos under the name of Stridhan. It is certainly a remarkable
fact that the institution seems to have been developed among the
Hindoos at a period relatively much earlier than among the
Romans. But instead of being matured and improved, as it was in
the Western society, there is reason to think that in the East,
under various influences which may partly be traced, it has
gradually been reduced to dimensions and importance far inferior
to those which at one time belonged to it.
The definition of Stridhan, or 'woman's property,' given in
one of the oldest and most authoritative of the Hindoo juridical
treatises, the Mitakshara, is as follows: 'That which is given
(to the wife) by the father, the mother, the husband, or a
brother, at the time of the wedding, before the nuptial fire.' Up
to this point, the doctrine has the concurrence of all the
schools of Hindoo law, but the compiler of the Mitakshara adds a
proposition not found elsewhere: 'also property which she may
have acquired by inheritance, purchase, partition, seizure, or
finding, is denominated by Manu and the others "woman's
property."' (Mitakshara, xi. 2.). These words, attributed, you
see, to the mythical legislator, Manu, have excited the most
vehement controversies among later Brahminical commentators, and
have caused considerable perplexity to Anglo-Indian Judges, bound
as they are to elicit consistent doctrine from the Hindoo legal
texts. 'All the property which a woman may have acquired by
inheritance, purchase, partition, seizure, or finding,' is a
comprehensive description of all the forms of property as defined
by the modes of acquisition, and, if all this be Stridhan, it
follows that the ancient Hindoo law secured to married women, in
theory at all events, an even greater degree of proprietary
independence than that given to them by the modern English
Married Women's Property Act. No doubt there is much difficulty
in understanding this. The existing Hindoo written law, which is
a mixed body of religious, moral, and legal ordinances, is
pre-eminently distinguished by the strictness with which it
maintains a number of obligations plainly traceable to the
ancient despotism of the Family, and by its excessive harshness
to the personal and proprietary liberty of women. Among the Aryan
sub-races, the Hindoos may be as confidently asserted as the
Romans to have had their society organised as a collection of
patriarchally governed families. If, then, at any early period,
the married woman had among the Hindoos her property altogether
enfranchised from her husband's control, it is not easy to give a
reason why the obligations of the family despotism were relaxed
in this one particular. In point of fact, there is no clue to the
mystery so long as we confine our attention to the Hindoo law,
and no course is open to a Judge except to take his stand on the
one ancient authority I have quoted or to follow the great bulk
of modern authorities who repudiate the doctrine of the
Mitakshara on this point. The Anglo-Indian Courts have now
substantially decided that Hindoo law (with the possible
exception of that current in Western India) limits the Stridhan
to property given to the woman at her marriage either by her
family or by her husband ('Madras High Court Reports,' iii. 312).
I think, however, that if we extend our examination to other
bodies of Aryan custom, we may partly understand the amplitude
which the Mitakshara, one of the most archaic of Hindoo
compendia, assigns to the Stridhan. A full enquiry would take me
much beyond the limits which I have proposed to myself in this
Lecture, but its results would shortly be these. Among the Aryan
communities as a whole, we find the earliest traces of the
separate property of women in the widely disused ancient
institution known as the Bride-Price. Part of this price, which
was paid by the bridegroom either at the wedding or the day after
it, went to the bride's father as compensation for the
Patriarchal or Family authority which was transferred to the
husband, but another part went to the bride herself and was very
generally enjoyed by her separately and kept apart from her
husband's property. It further appears that under a certain
number of Aryan customs the proprietary rights of other kinds
which women slowly acquired were assimilated to their rights in
their portion of the Bride-Price, probably as being the only
existing type of woman's property. The exact extent of the
separate ownership which the ancient Irish law allowed to married
women is still uncertain, but undoubtedly they had some power of
dealing with their own property without the consent of their
husbands, and this was one of the institutions expressly declared
by the Judges to be illegal at the beginning of the seventeenth
century.
If then the Stridhan had a pre-historic origin in the
Bride-Price, its growth and decay become more intelligible. First
of all it was property conferred on the wife by the husband 'at
the nuptial fire,' as the sacerdotal Hindoo lawyers express it.
Next it came to include what the Romans called the dos, property
assigned to the wife at her marriage by her own family. The next
stage may very well have been reached only in certain parts of
India, and the rules relating to it may only have found their way
into the doctrine of certain schools; but still there is nothing
contrary to the analogies of legal history in the extension of
the Stridhan until it included all the property of a married
woman. The really interesting question is how came the law to
retreat after apparently advancing farther than the Middle Roman
Law in the proprietary enfranchisement of women, and what are the
causes of the strong hostility of the great majority of Hindoo
lawyers to the text of the Mitakshara, of which the authority
could not be wholly denied? There are in fact clear indications
of a sustained general effort on the part of the Brahminical
writers on mixed law and religion, to limit the privileges of
women which they seem to have found recognised by older
authorities. The attention of English and European students of
the Hindoo law books was first attracted to this subject by a
natural desire to scrutinise the sacred texts upon which the
Brahmin learned were in the habit of insisting in defence of the
abominable practice of Suttee or widow-burning. The discovery was
soon made that the oldest monuments of law and religion gave no
countenance to the rite, and the conclusion was at once drawn
that, even on Hindoo principles, it was an unlawful innovation.
This mode of reasoning undoubtedly gave comfort to many devout
Hindoos, whom no secular argument could have reconciled to the
abandonment of a custom of proved antiquity; but still, in itself
it was unsound. The disuse of all practices which a scholar could
show to be relatively modern would dissolve the whole Hindoo
system. These inquiries, pushed much farther, have shown that the
Hindoo laws, religious and civil, have for centuries been
undergoing transmutation, development, and, in some points,
depravation at the hands of successive Brahminical expositors,
and that no rules have been so uniformly changed -- as we should
say, for the worse -- as those which affect the legal position of
women.
It will probably be conceded by all who have paid any
attention to our subject, that the civilised societies of the
West, in steadily enlarging the personal and proprietary
independence of women, and even in granting to them political
privilege, are only follow ing out still farther a law of
development which they have been obeying for many centuries. The
society, which once consisted of compact families, has got
extremely near to the condition in which it will consist
exclusively of individuals, when it has finally and completely
assimilated the legal position of women to the legal position of
men. In addition to many other objections which may be urged
against the common allegation that the legal disabilities of
women are merely part of the tyranny of sex over sex, it is
historically and philosophically valueless, as indeed are most
propositions concerning classes so large as sexes. What really
did exist is the despotism of groups over the members composing
them. What really is being relaxed is the stringency of this
despotism. Whether this relaxation is destined to end in utter
dissolution -- whether, on the other hand, under the influence
either of voluntary agreement or of imperative law, society is
destined to crystallise in new forms -- are questions upon which
it is not now material to enter, even if there were any hope of
solving them. All we need at present note is that the so-called
enfranchisement of women is merely a phase of a process which has
affected very many other classes, the substitution of individual
human beings for compact groups of human beings as the units of
society. Now, it is true that in the legal institutions of the
Hindoos (political institutions, I need scarcely say, for many
centuries they have had none) the despotism of the family group
over the men and women composing it is maintained in greater
completeness than among any society of similar civilisation and
culture. Yet there is abundant evidence that the emancipation of
the individual from the family had proceeded some way, even
before the country had come under the Western influences through
the British dominion. If I were to give you the full proof of
this, I should have to take you through much of the detail of
Hindoo law. I will mention one indication of it, because few are
aware that the peculiarity in question serves as a sort of test
by which we can distinguish very ancient or undeveloped from
comparatively matured and developed law.
All beginners in law have heard of the difference between
distributing an inheritance per stirpes and distributing it per
capita. A man has two sons, one of whom has eight children, and
the other two. The grandfather dies, his two sons having died
before him, and the grandfather's property has to be divided
between the grandchildren. If the division is per stirpes the
stocks of the two sons will be kept separate, and one half of the
inheritance will be distributed between the eight grandchildren,
and the other half between the two. If the division is per capita
the property will be equally divided between the whole ten
grandchildren, share and share alike. Now the tendency of matured
and developed law is to give a decided preference to distribution
per stirpes; it is only with remote classes of relatives that it
abandons the distinctions between the stocks and distributes the
property per capita. But in this, as in several other
particulars, very ancient and undeveloped law reverses the ideas
of the modern jurist, and uniformly prefers distribution per
capita, exactly equal division between all the surviving members
of the family; and this is apparently on the principle that, all
having been impartially subject to a despotism which knew no
degrees, all ought to share equally on the dissolution of the
community by the death of its chief. A preference for division
per stirpes, a minute care for the preservation of the stocks, is
in fact very strong evidence of the growth of a respect for
individual interests inside the family, distinct from the
interests of the family group as a whole. This is why the place
given to distribution per stirpes shows that a given system of
law has undergone development, and it so happens that this place
is very large in Hindoo law, which is extremely careful of the
distinction between stocks, and maintains them through long lines
of succession.
Let us now turn to the causes which in the Hindoo law, and in
the great alternative Aryan system, the Roman law, have
respectively led to the disengagement of the individual from the
group. So far as regards the Roman institutions, we know that
among the most powerful solvent influences were certain
philosophical theories, of Greek origin, which had deep effect on
the minds of the jurists who guided the development of the law.
The law, thus transformed by a doctrine which had its most
distinct expression in the famous proposition, 'all men are
equal,' was spread over much of the world by Roman legislation.
The empire of the Romans, for one reason alone, must be placed in
a totally different class from the Oriental despotisms, ancient
and modern, and even from the famous Athenian Empire. All these
last were tax-taking empires, which exercised little or no
interference in the customs of village-communities or tribes. But
the Roman Empire, while it was a tax-taking, was also a
legislating empire. It crushed out local customs, and substituted
for them institutions of its own. Through its legislation alone
it effected so great an interruption in the history of a large
part of mankind, nor has it had any parallel except -- and the
comparison is very imperfect -- the modern British Empire in
India. There is no reason to suppose that philosophical theory
had any serious influence on the jurisprudence of the Hindoos. I
speak with reserve on the subject, but I believe that none of the
remarkable philosophical theories which the genius of the race
produced are founded on a conception of the individual as
distinct from that of the group in which he is born. From those
of them with which I happen to be acquainted, I should say that
their characteristics are of exactly the reverse order, and that
they have their nearest counterpart in certain philosophical
systems of our own day, under which the individual seems lost in
some such conception as that of Humanity. What, then, was the
influence (for some influence there certainly was) which,
operating on the minds of the Brahminical jurists, led them to
assign to the individual rights distinct from those which would
have belonged to him through mere membership in the family group?
I conceive that it was the influence of Religion. Wherever among
any part of Hindoo society there prevailed the conviction of
responsibility after death -- whether that responsibility was to
be enforced by direct rewards and punishments, or through the
stages of the metempsychosis -- the conception of the individual,
who was to suffer separately and enjoy separately, was
necessarily realised with extreme distinctness.
The portions of the race strongly affected by religious
belief of this kind were exactly those for which the Brahminical
jurists legislated, and at first they probably legislated for
these alone. But with the notion of responsibility after death
the notion of expiation was always associated. Building upon this
last notion, the Brahminical commentators gradually transformed
the whole law until it became an exemplification of what Indian
lawyers call the doctrine of Spiritual Benefit. Inasmuch as the
condition of the dead could be ameliorated by proper expiatory
rites, the property descending or devolving on a man came to be
regarded by these writers partly as a fund for paying the
expenses of the ceremonial by which the soul of the person from
whom the inheritance came could be redeemed from suffering or
degradation, and partly as a reward for the proper performance of
the sacrifices. There ought to be nothing to surprise us in the
growth of such a doctrine, since it is only distinguished, by its
logical completeness, from one which had great influence on
Western jurisprudence. The interest which from very early times
the Church claimed in the moveable or personal property of
deceased persons is best explained by its teaching that the first
and best destination of a dead man's goods was to purchase masses
for his soul, and out of this view of the proper objects of
wealth the whole testamentary and intestate jurisdiction of the
Ecclesiastical Courts appears to have grown. But in India the law
constructed on these principles became extremely unfavourable to
the ownership of property by women, apparently because its
priestly authors thought that women, through their physical
weakness and their seclusion (which was doubtless regarded as
unavoidable), would have much greater difficulty than men, amid a
society always more or less disturbed, in applying a proper share
of the property to the funeral ceremonies of the person who had
transmitted it. The reasoning on the subject current even in
comparatively ancient times is thus given in the Mitakshara; 'The
wealth of a regenerate man is designed for religious uses, and a
woman's succession to such property is unfit because she is not
competent to the performance of religious rites.' The compiler of
the Mitakshara who has preserved the liberal rule as to Stridhan
which I before referred to, combats this doctrine, not, however,
by affirming the capacity of women for sacrifice, but by denying
that all property is intended for religious uses, and by pointing
out that certain acts which a female owner can do are of a
quasi-religious character, e.g., she may dig tanks. (Mitakshara,
ii. 1, 22, 23, 24.) And, putting him aside, the Brahminical
commentators who succeed one another in the Hindoo juridical
schools show a visibly increasing desire to connect all property
with the discharge of sacrificial duties, and with this desire
the reluctance to place property in the hands of women is somehow
connected.
On the whole the successive generations of Hindoo lawyers
show an increasing hostility to the institution of the Stridhan,
not by abolishing it, but by limiting to the utmost of their
power the circumstances under which it can arise. Minute
distinctions are drawn between the various modes in which
property may devolve upon a woman, and the conditions under which
such property may become Stridhan made rare and exceptional. The
aim of the lawyers was to add to the family stock, and to place
under the control of the husband as much as they could of
whatever came to the wife by inheritance or gift; but whenever
the property does satisfy the multifarious conditions laid down
for the creation of the Stridhan, the view of it as emphatically
'woman's property' is carried out with a logical consistency very
suggestive of the character of the ancient institution on which
the Brahminical jurists made war. Not only has the woman
singularly full power of dealing with the Stridhan -- not only is
the husband debarred from intermeddling with it, save in extreme
distress -- but, when the proprietress dies, there is a special
order of succession to her property, which is manifestly intended
to give a preference, wherever it is possible, to female
relatives over males.
Let me add that the account which I have given you of the
probable liberality of the Hindoo institutions to females at some
long past period of their development, and of the dislike towards
this liberality manifested by the Brahminical lawyers, is not to
be regarded as fanciful or purely conjectural, although,
doubtless, we can only guess at the explanation of it. It is
borne out by a very considerable number of indications, one of
which I mention as of great but very painful interest. The most
liberal of the Hindoo schools of jurisprudence, that prevailing
in Bengal Proper, gives a childless widow the enjoyment of her
husband's property, under certain restrictive conditions, for her
life; and in this it agrees with many bodies of unwritten local
custom. If there are male children, they succeed at once; but if
there are none the widow comes in for her life before the
collateral relatives. At the present moment, marriages among the
upper classes of Hindoos being very commonly infertile, a
considerable portion of the soil of the wealthiest Indian
province is in the hands of childless widows as tenants for life.
But it was exactly in Bengal Proper that the English, on entering
India, found the Suttee, or widow-burning, not merely an
occasional, but a constant and almost universal practice with the
wealthier classes, and, as a rule, it was only the childless
widow, and never the widow with minor children, who burnt herself
on her husband's funeral pyre. There is no question that there
was the closest connection between the law and the religious
custom, and the widow was made to sacrifice herself in order that
her tenancy for life might be got out of the way. The anxiety of
her fam